^^ ^o. 4 ^ o^'f'^r^.V*'^'^"' %,^^ - ,G ^^' ^ - V-

^ -.^^^ <^^ ^^ ^ ' ' ' ' V^^ ^ ^ " " / ^/-i ^o. ^ "< * * s ^ • -iM <> ' c ^^.. cCC^^^'^o -^^ .' <^ ^^ *,. s'> A^ ^. ..V -% '^t. o' r^ ^ y> -* '^ / * i s ^ A^ v^- ■' * * ^ ,-^ V * .. <* < " ^ / BOSTON AND NEW YORK HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN AND COMPANY 1893 Copyright, 1893, By ALFRED M. WILLIAMS. All rights reserved. The Riverside Press, Cambridge Mass., XT. S. A. Electrotyped and Printed by H. O. Houghton & Co. PKEFACE My purpose in writing the life of Sam Houston and a history of the War of Independence in Texas has been to give as accurate a picture as was in my poT\er of a very remarkable and interesting per- sonality, and a period of great importance in the growth and character of the nation. Houston pos- sessed very strong and original qualities as well as very apparent weaknesses and limitations, and his character and conduct often deserved censure as well as discriminating approval. He had many devoted partisans, attracted by his achievements and personal magnetism, as well as bitter enemies, created by his sharp tongue and masterful temperament, and the written records and estimates of him vary from ex- travagant and often fulsome eulogy to the harshest de- preciation and the most envenomed attack. In later years the detraction and animosity are dying away, and he is becoming a somewhat mythical hero, who represents the traditional pride of a community, and embodies the reverence of a heroic history. But the remembrance of his impressive and original per- sonality is still strong among the contemporaries of his later years, and the anecdotes and reminiscences iv PREFACE which are orally current give the illustrative charac- teristics of the man, in spite of the exaggeration and invention which grow up about them. I believe that I have read all the books which relate to Houston's career, beside consulting a large number of the files of contemporary newspapers, letters, speeches, and pamphlets by himseK and his associates. I have also conversed with many who knew him personally, and who have given me facts and anecdotes which have never been published. I have examined the archives of the Republic and State of Texas in the Capitol at Austin, and the records of the national Congress, while he was a member. The facts in regard to his life among the Cherokees in the Indian Territory were obtained from the lips of aged Indians who re- membered him, and particularly from the late Judge Riley Keys, an intelligent Cherokee, who was familiar with him during his residence with the tribe. I have endeavored to be impartial as well as accurate, and to present the man as he was, with his faults as well as his virtues, and his failures and errors as well as his successes and achievements. I have used those anec- dotes and incidents which, however apparently tri- fling, reveal the man as an individual and in his daily life as well as in his public career, and have not sup- pressed or modified those which would show the weak- nesses which contrasted with his strong and admirable qualities. It is needless to say that there is no other course to be taken for the truth of history or for intel- ligent biography. Houston is strong enough to endure PREFACE V an unflattering portrait, and the interest in his individ- uality, and as the type and product of his time and circumstances, depends upon the absolute accuracy of the resemblance. The history of the War of Independence in Texas has been several times written. The most elaborate and valuable account is that of Plenderson Yoakum, who had access to the original documents, and was familiar with many of the actors in the military and legislative history of the Republic of Texas. He is honest and accurate, and although later researches have corrected some errors, his volumes will remain the principal storehouse of information in regard to the events of the period. William Kennedy, a Scotchman and British consul at Galveston, preceded Yoakum, and his History of the Republic of Texas contains many original documents and much valuable information. Senator Henry G. Foote, of Mississippi, wrote his volumes on " Texas and the Texans " rather in the style of a controversial and oratorical pamphlet to favor annexation than a sober history, although they possess some value in the journals and accounts of participants in the events. Mr. H. H. Bancroft, with his customary industry and accuracy, has investi- gated the history of Texas in American and Mexican sources, and published the results in his " History of the North Mexican States and Texas." Rev. H. G. Thrall has given some useful statistical and other information in his " Pictorial History of Texas." There are a considerable number of personal memoirs vi PREFACE and sketclies which give accounts of individual a<;- tions during the time, and the reminiscences of those who took part in the events. The series of the " Texas Almanac," published at Galveston, is espe- cially valuable as giving the accounts of personal sur- vivors of the war, although they are often colored by prejudice and sometimes contradictory in statement. The period was a heroic one in the achievement of personal vigor and daring. The defense of the Alamo will always be reckoned as one of the most striking examples of desperate and determined valor in all history, and the fight at San Jacinto conclu- sively demonstrated the superiority of the Anglo- American race over the Hispano-Mexican. There was much turbulence and lawlessness among the ad- venturers from the United States and the original settlers, and schemes for conquest which had no pa- triotic motive, and there was the uncertainty and irregularity of action inevitable to a people carrying on the war by volunteer levies rather than by disci- plined armies. But the war for the independence of Texas was not in its governing character a filibuster enterprise, whatever may have been the motives and purposes of some of its leaders, but was the result of the oppression and jealousy of the Mexican authori- ties compelling resistance, and the conditions which inevitably brought the American colonists into con- flict with those of an inferior calibre and alien institu- tions and habits. It was fought with courage and determination and on the whole with practical wis- PREFACE vii dom, and was creditable to the race as well as to the community. I am indebted to ex-Senator Jobn H. Reagan, to ex-Governors F. A Lubbock and O. M. Roberts, of Austin, to Hon. Hamilton Stuart, of Galveston, to Hon. E. W. Cave and Judge Alexander McGowan, of Houston, and to many others in Texas, for anecdotes and reminiscences of Houston. I am much indebted to Judge C. W. Raines of the Agricultural and Sta^ tistical Department at Austin for assistance in exam- ining the archives and newspaper files at the Capitol. I owe my earnest thanks to my friends James A. Hervey, of Medford, Mass., and James Jeffrey Roche, of Boston, for advice and assistance in the details of the book. A list of the books relating to Houston and the history of Texas will be found at the end of the volume. Providence, R. 1., June 23, 1893. CONTENTS CHAPTER PAGE I. Boyhood and Youth ...... 1 II. The Young Soldier 11 III. Member of Congress and Governor of Tennes- see 22 IV. Indian Life — the Stanberry Affair . . .37 V. Texas at the Beginning of the Struggle for Independence 53 VI. Houston's Arrival in Texas — the Outbreak of the War 74- VII. Battle of Concepcion — Capture op San Antonio 97 VIII. Organization of the Provisional Government — Houston elected Commander-in-Chief . .117 IX. Fall of the Alamo — Creation of the Republic 137 X. The Massacre of Goliad 161 XT. San Jacinto 184 XII. First Term as President 218 XIII. Second Term as President — Annexation . 249 XIV. Senator of the United States .... 296 XV. Governor of Texas — Secession .... 333 XVI. Last Years — Death 363 XVII. Cbl!Iracteristics 378 Bibliography . . 397 Index 401 SAM HOUSTON AND THE WAR OF INDEPENDENCE IN TEXAS CHAPTER I BOYHOOD AND YOUTH Samuel, or as he called and signed himself, and as he is known in the familiar language of history, Sam Houston, was born on the 2d of March, 1793, at a place called Timber Ridge Church, about seven miles east of Lexing-ton, in Rockbridge County, Virginia. He came from that strong and sturdy Scotch-Irish stock which has given so many notable names to American history and exercised so powerful an influence in the forma- tive period of the nation. There was a good deal in Sam Houston's character and temperament to indicate a Celtic admixture in the somewhat dour and sober strain of the Presbyterian Scotch-Irish, but there is no name in the records of the family genealogy to indicate it, and it must have been from very remote atavism or the accident of individual constitution. The Hous- ton family was of Lowland-Scotch origin, of sufficient rank to have a coat of arms, and representatives of its branches have occupied positions of provincial im- 2 SAM HOUSTON portance. There is a family tradition that its repre- sentative took part in the defense of Londonderry, but as there is also one that John Houston, the founder of the American branch of the family, came to this country in 1689, the year of the siege, this may be considered as doubtful so far as the immediate ances- tor of Houston is concerned. The name of James Huston is, however, to be found attached to the loyal address to King William by the defenders of Londonderry signed the 29th of July, 1689. John Houston, who was possessed of considerable means and was apparently the leader of an emigrant colony of his compatriots, settled in Philadelphia, and left a numerous family of children. His grandson Robert Houston removed to Virginia, purchased a consider- able tract of land in Rockbridge County, and married a lady of the Scotch families of Davidson and Dunlop. He also left a numerous family, who became con- nected with the representatives of the gentry of the neighborhood. His son Samuel inherited the estate and married a Miss Elisabeth Paxton, whose family had been associated with his own in the emigration from Ireland and its subsequent life in America. The position of the family in Virginia was evidently not that of the manorial gentry of the seaboard and eastern river valleys, but that of the wealthier farmers of the interior, who lived in rude plenty mainly by their own labor, and formed a class of substantial and independent yeomen. Samuel Houston served with credit, if not with great distinction, in General Daniel BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 3 Morgan's brigade of riflemen during the Revolution- ary War, and at its close was appointed Major and Assistant Inspector - General of the frontier troops. He died while on a toui' of duty in the Alleghany Mountains in 1806, leaving his widow with a family of six sons and three daughters. Tradition describes Major Houston as a man of large frame, command- 1, ing presence, indomitable courage and a passion for military life. Mrs. Houston was also remarkable for her magnificent physique, and was a woman of great force of character, respected and beloved in the neighborhood for her benevolence and helpfulness, and impressing her individuality and influence deeply upon the mind and memory of the most distinguished of her children, who always spoke of her with rev- erence and affection. After the death of her hus- band, with the vigor and energy characteristic of that pioneer age, she determined to remove to the new settlements in Tennessee ; and with her young family, Sam being then thirteen years of age, she crossed the Alleghany Mountains, and settled in Blount County at a point eight miles east of the Tennessee Eiver, then the boundary between the tribe of Cherokee Indians and their white neighbors. Here a cabin was built, a clearing was opened, and the family lived in the rude and toilsome frontier fashion, while wresting a living from the wilderness. Houston's reminiscences of his boyhood included a few months of schooling in what was called the " Old Field School," kept in a dilapidated building in the 4 SAM HOUSTON neighborhood, once occupied by Washington 4M^ver- n-via^ -^i^? which had been removed to Lexington ; and that ' he used to run from his work in the fields to take his place in the spelling class. Only the simplest rudi- ments of an education could have been given in a country school in a thinly peopled agricidtural neigh- borhood like that of Rockbridge County, and in a pioneer settlement like that in East Tennessee the opportunities must have been even less. Whatever education Houston acquired in his early youth must have been due to his active mind and fervid imagina- tion, eagerly feeding upon what books came in his way and possessing them with a fullness and reality unknown to those whose minds are satiated and dulled with an abundance and variety of reading. Among the few books which had come to the frontier settlement in the pack-saddles and in the corners of chests among the homespun garments and household implements, and which were read by the light of the fat pine fire, was Pope's translation of the Iliad, and this was devoured by the boy with all the fervid appetite of vigorous youtliful imagination, until he knew it nearly by heart. The artificiality of Pope's style, which is an offense and an obstruction to the refined literary taste that requires the purest flavor for its fastidious palate, was no drawback in the eager appetite of the boy to the appreciation of the reality of the heroic figures and the fresh and immortal drama "of human life behind it ; and the battles on the windy plains of the Scamander, the camp-fires, /• ^. BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 5 the ships, and the walls of Troy were as visible and real to him as the woods and fields of the Tennessee valleys. Such a book was an education in itself in all that relates to human life, in the elevation of the spirit and the kindling of the imagination. Through- out his life Houston was a man of few books. When commander of the Texas army he deeply studied Caesar's Commentaries for their simple and sagacious lessons of war, which he assimilated with a native intuition, as well as for the severe fascination of the narrative. He read and appreciated Shakespeare and had some familiarity with the standards of English classical literature ; in his later years, after he became " converted," he read the Bible thoroughly and con- stantly, so that its phraseology tinged his oratory. But his reading was always limited. His wisdom and knowledge came from contact with men ; and his literary gifts, his power of vigorous and impressive writing on great subjects, and his persuasive and fig- urative eloquence were due to native faculties, to the power of his mind compelling appropriate words, and the kindling force of his genius elevating and illumi- nating common speech, and not to any training in the arts of rhetoric or the study of masters of language and expression. It was during his early residence in East Tennessee that occurred the first of his recorded escapades, that breaking out of the wild blood, the longing for adventure and the free life of the wilderness in the companionship of its children, which characterized his 6 SAM HOUSTON whole career and was a part of his nature. He had been placed by his elder brothers as a clerk in a trader's store, but his restless spirit revolted at the tame life behind the counter and the drudgery of the boxes and barrels, and one day he absconded across the Tennessee River to take up his abode with the Cherokees. He was received into their cabins as a friend and a brother, whose natural tastes and in- stincts were their own, and acquired that knowledge of and sjanpathy with the Indian character which he manifested through life. It is in a great measure an instinct, a kindred element in the blood, the inheri- tance of primitive nature, which enables men like Houston and many other pioneer adventurers and soldiers to be thoroughly at home in the Indian camps, to share the emotions and thoughts of their savage friends, and to govern and be trusted by them through the community as well as the superiority of their powers. The records of history and of travel are full of the examples of men of civilized training and scholarly culture who were never so much at home as when in the company of the children of the desert and the forest, whose simple natures they appreciated, and whose wild and free life had an irresistible touch of sympathy with their own instincts ; and the rule of inveterate hostility and antagonism between the white settlers of America and the aborigines has often been broken by cases of natural attraction and the adop- tion of savage life and companionship by the mem- bers of the civilized race. Houston had many of BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 7 the characteristics of the Indian in his nature : his hot blood, his strong passions and appetites, his fondness for adventure and the untrammeled freedom of the wilderness, liis solemnly childish vanity and turn for histrionic effect; as well as the higher qualities of the native chief, a commanding personal power and impressiveness, a shrewdness like that of Ulysses in managing men and affairs, an eloquence of original power and impressiveness, a loftiness of spirit and the dominant quality of determination and courage. All these qualities were doubtless visible in the youth as in the man, and Houston was made welcome to the Cherokee villages and adopted into the family of one of the sub -chiefs of the tribe. He thoroughly ac- quired the Cherokee language, which is so difficult that it is said never to have been learned by an adult, wore the native dress, and was to all intents and purposes an Indian. It is to be said that the Chero- kees were among the most intelligent and civilized of the North American Indians, lived in cabins instead of wigwams, cultivated fields, and in some instances at this time owned negro slaves, had a written lan- guage of their own invention, and were not greatly different in their habits and manners of life from their pioneer neighbors. But they were Indians, and the flavor of wildness was as distinct among them as among the gypsies, and this was what attracted Houston and made him at home among them. When the place of his retreat was discovered he was visited by his brothers, who endeavored to persuade him to 8 SAM HOUSTON return home ; but he replied, with that touch of gran- diloquence which always distinguished him, that he . preferred measuring deer-tracks to measuring tape, and that they might leave him in the woods. He remained with the Cherokees until his eighteenth year, occasionally returning to the white settlements for the supplies wanted for himself and his friends. At this time, finding himself in debt for the ammuni- tion and trinkets which he had purchased, he resolved to return to civilization, and wipe off the debt by opening a country school. The standard of qualifica- tion could not have been beyond the most rudimen- tary elements, or, with all his courage and self-confi- dence, Houston would not have attempted to fill it. It is recorded through his reminiscences that he / ♦ raised the price of tuition from six to eight dollars per annum, one third payable in corn at thirty-three and one half cents per bushel, one third in cash, and one third in variegated cotton goods, such as made the teacher's hunting shirt. Houston's popu- lar attributes were illustrated in the success of his school, which soon included most of the children of the neighborhood, and enabled him to pay off his not very formidable debt. A glimpse of Houston at this time was given by himself in conversation with Colonel Peter Burke, an old comrade of the Indian wars, who had emigrated to Texas after the annexation. He met Houston, then a senator of the United States, on the steamboat going up the Buffalo Bayou from Galveston to the BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 9 town of Houston. There was a warm greeting be- tween the old comrades, and they sat long on the deck exchanging reminiscences. Finally, the conversation turned upon Houston's successful career, and Colonel Burke said, "Now, Houston, you have been Com- mander-in-chief of the Texan army, President of the Kepublic, and Senator of the United States. In which of these offices, or at what period in your career, have you felt the greatest pride and satisfaction ? " " Well, Burke," said Houston, " when a young man in Ten- nessee I kept a country school, being then about eighteen years of age, and a tall, straj)ping fellow. At noon after the luncheon, which I and my pupils ate together out of our baskets, I would go out into the woods, and cut me a ' sour wood ' stick, trim it care- fully in circular spirals, and thrust one half of it into the fire, which would turn it blue, leaving the other haK white. With this emblem of ornament and authority in my hand, dressed in a hunting-shirt of \ flowered calico, a long queue down my back, and the ; sense of authority over my pupils, I experienced a higher feeling of dignity and self-satisfaction than from any office or honor which I have since held." After teaching for a time Houston attended a session or two of the Academy at Maryville, which completed all the education that he was ever to receive from the schools.* The war between the United States and Great Britain had broken out, and the drum was beaten on the frontier for recruits. In 1813 a recruiting party visited Maryville, and 10 SAM HOUSTON Houston enlisted as a private soldier, being then in his twentieth year. He replied to the remonstrances of his friends at the supposed degradation of his en- listment with his customary grandiloquence and self- confidence, that he would sooner honor the ranks than disgrace an appointment, and that they should hear of him. According to his reminiscences in later life his mother admonished him in the spirit and almost in the language of a Roman matron of the melodramatic stage, handing him his musket at the cabin door, and saying, " There, my son, take this musket, and never disgrace it ; for remember, I had rather all my sons should fill one honorable grave than that one of them should turn his back to save his life. Go ; and remember, too, that while the door of my cabin is open to brave men, it is eternally shut to all cowards ! " These words show that Mrs. Hous- ton was remarkably like her son in the use of inflated language, or that he supplied what he considered the proper expression to a more plain-spoken but vigor- ous and spirited admonition. \ CHAPTER II • THE YOUNG SOLDIER Haying taken the silver dollar from the head of the drum, which was the recognized token of enlist- ment in those days, and put on a uniform, Houston was made a sergeant the same day, and marched with his detachment to join the Thirty-ninth Regiment, Tennessee Volunteers. He was stationed with his reg- iment at various cantonments in Alabama and Ten- nessee, and by his active zeal and devotion to duty acquired the reputation of being the best drill officer in the command. He was, however, not left long in the ranks. His friends made application to Presi- dent Madison for an appointment, and he received a commission as ensign, which reached him while the regiment was stationed atKnoxville. It was the period of the Creek war. That powerful tribe had been aroused by the eloquence of Tecumseh and his brother, the Prophet, as well as by the sense of the constant aggression of the whites, and the knowledge that only a desperate struggle could save them from being crowded out of their lands and home. They broke out into a sudden attack upon the white settlements, and perpetrated the massacre at Fort Minis in Alabama, August 10, 1813. They 12 SAM HOUSTON were defeated by the troops under General Jackson and General Coffee at Talladega and Taluschatchee, their country ravaged, and their villages burned. But the spirit of the tribe was yet unbroken, and the war smouldered and spluttered along the border in the burning of cabins and raids upon the outlying settlers. It was determined to put an end to it by a decisive and exterminating campaign, and the volunteer troops were again called out under Jackson and Coffee. Houston's regiment joined this army, and marched to the scene of hostilities. The fighting remnant of the tribe had rallied for a last stand at To-ho-pe-ka, or the Horseshoe, a bend on the Tallaj)oosa River in Ala- bama, which they had fortified by breastworks across the neck of the peninsula. Here were gathered some seven hundred warriors, the flower of the fighting men of the nation, and three hundred women and phildren. At this place Jackson's army, numbering about two thousand men, arrived on the 27th of August, 1814. The battle of To-ho-pe-k^ was one of the most hotly contested and desperate which has ever been fought by the Indian race against civilized arms and discipline. The Indians had been wrought up to a high pitch of enthusiasm and desperation by the fer- vent appeals and predictions of their prophets and chiefs, and the natural strength of their position gave them additional confidence. The inclosure, about a hundred acres in extent, was trenched with ravines, and thickly wooded with trees and bush. Across the opening, which was about three hundred and fifty THE YOUNG SOLDIER 13 yards in width, was built a breastwork of three rows of heavy pine logs, set upright in the ground, and arranged with some military skill in zigzags for a rak- ing as well as a front fire. The rest of the peninsula was protected by the steep banks of the unfordable river. Jackson drew up his main body in a line fronting the breastworks, and the battle was begun at half past ten o'clock in the forenoon by the fire of his small cannon, a four and a six pounder, which had been planted on an eminence about eighty yards from the breastworks. These balls had no effect on the solid pine logs, and were saluted with whoops of derision by the Indians, as they replied through the port-holes to the rifle fire of the besiegers. In the mean time General Coffee with the mounted troops and the bands of Cherokees who had joined the whites against their neighbors, the Creeks, had invested the peninsula on the opposite side of the river. Some of the Cherokees swam across the stream, and brought away the canoes, which the Creeks had hidden under the bushes of the bank. By these canoes General Coffee's troops were taken across, and the crack of their rifles and the smoke from the burning cabins at the head of the peninsula announced to Jackson's army that the Creeks had been taken in the rear. It was then half past twelve. The long roll was beaten and the order given to charge the breastworks. The onset was made with all the vigor and fury of the fiery frontiersmen. 14 SA3I HOUSTON Houston at the extreme right of his regiment dashed forward in front of the line as it charged upon the breastworks, which were spitting fire at every crevice. With a spring and a scramble he gained the top of the palisade from which Major Montgomery of his regiment had just fallen dead with a rifle ball in his head. As he did so a barbed arrow struck deep in his thigh. He sprang down, and at the head of the rush of men who had followed drove the Indians back from the palisade to take refuge among the trees and brush. As the space was cleared and the battle paused for a moment Houston called upon the lieu- tenant of the company to pull out the arrow. Twice he made the attempt and failed, it was so deeply embedded in the flesh. Drawing back his sword over his head Houston roared to him to try again, and that he would cut him down if he failed. This time, exerting all his strength, the lieutenant pulled out the arrow, leaving a gaping and jagged wound from which the blood gushed in a stream. Houston recrossed the breastworks to have it stanched. While under the surgeon's hands he was seen by Jackson, who was watching the fight on horseback. Jackson ordered him to the rear. Houston made light of his wound, and begged to be allowed to rejoin the fight, but was peremptorily refused. He disobeyed after Jackson had moved off, recrossed the breastworks, and again engaged in the conflict. It was fought with all the fury of savage desperation. The Indians, driven from the palisade, took refuge in the ravines and behind THE YOUNG SOLDIER 15 the trees and bushes. From these they fired, and were shot by the quick rifles of the frontiersmen, or killed in hand-to-hand conflicts in which clubbed rifle crashed against clubbed rifle, and hunting-knife struck against tomahawk. Not a warrior asked for or re- ceived quarter. The fight raged over the hundred- acre space all the afternoon, until the larger number of the Indians had been killed in their tracks, or shot while endeavoring to swim the turbid waters of the river. A small band of the warriors bad, meanwhile, taken refuge in a deep ravine close to the river on one side of the breastworks. It was roofed with lieavy pine logs, and almost as impregnable to assault as a cave. The only way in which it could be taken was by a direct charge upon the narrow entrance. An inter- preter was sent forward to summon them to surrender, but they replied with a shot, which wounded him, and with yells of rage and defiance. Jackson called for volunteers to storm the ravine, but the task was* so evidently desperate that no body of men gathered to respond to the call. Houston dashed forward, calling upon his men to follow him, but without looking back to see if they did so. When within a few yards of the entrance he received two bullets in his shoulder, and his upper right arm was shattered. His musket fell from his hand, and he was helpless. No one had supported his charge, and he drew back out of the range of the fire. It was not until the logs covering the ravine had been set on fire by blazing arrows, and 16 S am' HOUSTON the desperate warriors had been shot as they burst out of the smoke and flame, that the last refuge crumbled in ashes and blood. It was sunset when the battle was over, and the last hope of the Creek nation was crushed. In his report of the battle to his superior officer. General Pinckney, Jackson does not mention the exploit of Houston's, although it took place under his eye, but his name is contained in the list of the wounded of his regiment afterward forwarded to Governor Blount of Tennessee. It, how- ever, gained for Houston Jackson's friendship and confidence, which he retained throughout his life. Houston was borne from the field and put in charge of the surgeons. They considered his wounds neces- sarily fatal, although it does not appear why they should, unless they believed his lungs to be touched. They extracted one bullet, but made no attempt to probe for the other in an unnecessary torture. He lay all night on the damp ground, receiving none of the attention which was given to those whose wounds were not considered mortal. In the morning he was found to be alive, placed on a rude litter, and conveyed to Fort Williams, some sixty or seventy miles distant. Here he received only some rude surgery, the regu- lar hospital for the wounded officers being at a place called the Hickory Ground. He was kindly cared for, however, a part of the time by Colonel Johnson and a part of the time by Colonel Cheatham, two volunteer officers from his State. At length he was removed to the Ten Islands, where there was a THE YOUNG SOLDIER 17 military post and hospital. General Dougherty, who commanded the East Tennessee brigade, had him conveyed by horse litter several hundred miles through the Cherokee country to his mother's cabin. The journey was intensely painful from the rough method of conveyance, and he could only be supplied with the coarsest food. It was nearly two months after the battle of To-ho-pe-ka when he reached his mother's house. He was emaciated to a skeleton by his wounds and privations, and so changed that his mother said that she would not have recognized him, except for his eyes. He did not recover at home under his mother's care, nor at Marysville, where he was taken for medical treatment. Finally he was removed to Knoxville, which he reached in so low a condition of vitality that the doctor said that he could live but a few days, and declined to take charge of his case. Finding at the end of that time that Houston was not only not dead, but actually somewhat better, he consented to treat him. He slowly recovered strength, and after a time was able to make the journey on horseback to Washington, which he reached shortly after the burn- ing of the Capitol in the raid of the British troops. Being still unfit for active duty, he returned to Lex- ington, Ya., where he spent a portion of the winter with his relatives and friends. He continued to gain in strength, and returned to Knoxville, where he re- ceived the news of the battle of New Orleans, and was placed on duty at the cantonment of his regiment. 18 SAM HOUSTON On the reduction of the army after the declaration of peace, Houston was assigned to the First Regiment of infantry in the regular army, having received his promotion to a lieutenancy for his gallantry at To-ho- pe-ka, and ordered to report for duty at New Orleans. He made the journey down the Cumberland and the Mississippi in a skiff with only two companions, one of whom was E. D. White, afterward Governor of Louisiana. He has recorded that while voyaging down the vast and lonely stream of the Mississippi they saw, on turning a bend, a vessel pouring out a stream of smoke, which they supposed to be on fire ; but it proved to be the first steamboat which had navigated its waters. They left their skiff at Natchez and took the steamer, which conveyed them to New Orleans. In New Orleans, Houston's wounds were again operated upon, and, in his weakened condition, the operation nearly cost him his life. After shatter- ing his right arm at nearly the junction with his shoulder, the bullet had passed around and lodged under the shoulder-blade. The wound never entirely healed, and constantly discharged until the day of his death. After a winter of weakness and suffering in New Orleans, he went to New York for medical treat- ment, and then reported for duty at the Adjutant- General's office in Nashville, where he was employed until November, 1817. At that time he was appointed a sub-agent of the Cherokees under General Return J. Meigs, at the request of General Jackson, and accepted the duty, although yet hardly fit for active THE YOUNG SOLDIER 19 service. General Jackson wrote to Assistant Secre- tary of War Graham, " He is a young man of sonnd integrity, wlio has my entire confidence, and in every way he is capacitated to fill the appointment. Moreover he has some claims upon the government for a severe wound received in the service, which may be , considered a disability." Jackson also wrote to Gen- / eral Meigs, " In him I have full confidence, and in / him you will have a friend clear of design and deceit, on whom you can rely under all and every circum- I stance, as capable to aid you in every respect." In the previous year the chiefs of the Cherokees had signed a treaty by which they agreed to surrender 1,385,200 acres of their best land in East Tennessee. A portion of the tribe were naturally indignant, and refused to remove from their homes. There were apprehensions of serious trouble when Houston was appointed, and his knowledge of the Cherokee language and ac- quaintance and friendship in the tribe doubtless made his influence very useful in subduing the hostility and ill-feeling. He received the thanks of Governor McMunn, who had succeeded General Meigs as agent, for the efficiency of his services. He conducted a delegation of the Cherokees to "Washington to receive the funds for 'the sale of their lands and fix the bounds of their reservation, and while there had trouble with John C. Calhoun, then Secretary of War, which resulted in the termination of his service in the army, and doubtless intensified the antagonism to that wing of the Democratic party represented by Calhoun, which he manifested in later 20 SAM HOUSTON life. His first offense was in appearing before tlie punctilious Secretary dressed in the garments of an Indian, whicli lie habitually assumed when living with them. He received a rebuke for this which he did not relish. But a more serious charge followed. The Indian country was full of outlaws and desperate ad- venturers, who were engaged in all sorts of schemes of plunder and offense against the laws. One of these was the smuggling of slaves from Florida, then a province of Spain, who were taken through the Indian reservation to the border settlements. Houston inter- fered to break up this nefarious traffic, and naturally excited the enmity of those engaged in it. Some of them or their agents in Washington made charges against Houston affecting his official integrity and personal conduct. He appeared before President Madison and Secretary Calhoun, and successfully de- fended himself, and having concluded his agency business in Washington, conducted the Cherokee dele- gation back to the Hilli-bee towns. But his hasty temper had taken umbrage at the unwarranted attacks upon him, and the spirit in which the inquiry into his conduct had been instituted by the Secretary of War, and he resigned. May 18, 1818. He was then a first lieutenant,' and had served for &ve years. Houston's service in the army of the United States was useful and creditable, although he did not rise above a subordinate, or take part in any important military operation. He earned the respect and com- mendation of his superior officers, and was noted for his zeal and capacity as a soldier. It was Houston's THE YOUNG SOLDIER 21 bravery under Ms own eyes whicli attracted the friend- ship and confidence of Jackson, which he retained through all the vicissitudes of his career. On the other hand Houston conceived a respect and admiration for Jackson, which made him a devoted follower, person- ally and politically, and the only person, it was said, to whose judgment he deferred, and who could influence his actions. In many respects alike in passion and temperament, and both characteristic products of the untamed and vigorous life of the frontier, they had essential elements of difference in habits and charac- ter, and the stronger, more self-contained and sterner nature of Jackson dominated the more impassioned and enthusiastic temperament of Houston. Senator Benton in his speech in the Senate, May 16, 1836, in favor of acknowledging the indepen- dence of Texas as a consequence of the battle of San Jacinto, bore testimony, in his somewhat higliflown and stilted way, to the good qualities of Houston as a young soldier. He said, " Houston was appointed an ensign in the army of the United States during the late war with Great Britain, and served in the Creek campaign under the banner of Jackson. I was the lieutenant-colonel of the regiment to which he be- longed, and the first field-officer to whom he reported. I then marked in him the same soldierly and gentle- manly qualities, which have since distinguished his eventful career ; frank, generous and brave, ready to do or to suffer whatever the obligations of civil or mili- tary duty imposed ; and always prompt to answer the call of honor, patriotism or friendship." CHAPTER III MEMBER OF CONGRESS AND GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE After leaving the army Houston determined to become a lawyer, which in those days in the South- west was synonymous with politician. For this career he doubtless felt his remarkable fitness and vocation as a popular orator and manager of men. He had contracted some debts while in the service, on account of extra expenses caused by his wounds, and he sold his only piece of property, some land, to pay them ; it failed to do so entirely, and he began his new life some hundreds of dollars in debt. He entered the law office of Hon. James Trimble in Nashville, and was admitted to the bar after six months' study. It may be supposed that the examination was not very strict, and the requirements of technical knowledge not very exhaustive. Andrew Jackson had been made a district attorney without knowing how to spell, and a knowledge of the intricacies of the law and the pre- cedents of the courts was of much less consequence for a successful practitioner than a flow of popular oratory for the jury, and a courage to hold one's own with the fighting attorneys, who occasionally supple- mented the heated debate in the court room by a per- sonal encounter outside. At any rate Houston never MEMBER OF CONGRESS 23 was and never pretended to be a lawyer in the pro- fessional sense of the term. He was the political attorney in Tennessee, using the opportunities of the court room to show his powers of rough and ready eloquence, and to obtain professional and political office ; and in Texas, during the rare intervals when he was not holding some public position, he some- times went on circuit and made effective stimip speeches to juries in criminal cases. But he never studied and never knew anything of the law beyond those general principles which are readily appreciated by a strong and capacious mind, and the easy and slipshod requirements of frontier practice. In this he was probably not inferior to most of his associates, and was able to hold his own with credit and success among the attorneys who traveled the circuits of Ten- nessee, with their libraries in their saddle-bags and a ready tongue and pistol as their chief requirements for successful practice. After being admitted to the bar Houston settled in Lebanon, Tennessee, bought his books on credit, and hired an office at a dollar a month. He was received with much kindness by Isaac GoUaday, a merchant and postmaster of Lebanon, who sold him a suit of clothes, let him have his letters on credit, and in- troduced him to his friends. One of the pleasant glimpses of Houston's personal life is given in a letter of a son of Isaac GoUaday, to whom Houston mani- fested his gratitude for his father's kindness, while sick and a stranger in Texas : — 24 SAM HOUSTON " I was traveling in Texas in 1853. Arrived at tlie town of Huntsville, Walker County, on Sunday at about eleven o'clock. The good people of the town and the vicinity were passing on to the church as I rode up to the hotel. I was very sick ; had a high fever on me when I dismounted. I told the landlord I was very sick and wanted a room ; he assigned me a room and was very kind in his attentions. I took a bed immediately, and while talking to him asked him in what part of the State General Houston lived. He re^jlied, ' He lives about one and a half miles from town, and his family and he have just passed, going to church in their carriage.' To this I said, ' Please keep on the lookout, and when he returns from church let him know that a Golladay of Tennessee is lying sick here I ' After the church hour was over, say twelve or one o'clock, a large, portly, elegant- looking man came walking into my room and to my bedside. I knew from the description which I had had of him that it was General Houston, although I had never seen him. I called him by name. He asked me if I was the son of his old friend, Isaac Golladay, of Lebanon, Tennessee. I replied I was. He then asked me which one. I told him I was Frederick. He said he knew my elder brothers, but he had left Lebanon before I was born, but added, ' If you are the son of Isaac Golladay I recognize you as the child of an old and true friend. I went to Lebanon, where your father resided, a poor young man ; your father furnished me an office for the prac- MEMBER OF CONGRESS 25 tice of law ; credited me in Ms store for clothes ; let me have the letters, which then cost twenty-five cents postage, from the office of which he was postmaster ; invited me to his house, and recommended me to all the good j)eople of his large general acquaintance.' He then said, ' You must go out to my house. I will come in my carriage for you in the evening.' I re- plied with thanks that I was too sick to go, but he insisted on coming for me the next morning, to which I consented. Early the next morning he came for me ; being better, I went out to his house with him. He placed me in a room in his yard, saying that Mrs. H. was confined to her room with an infant at that time. My fever rose and kept me confined. He sent for a physician. I was sick there for about ten days or two weeks. He made a servant-man stay and sleep in the office with me, to wait on me all the while, but would often come and see me, and spend much of his time with me. One night, especially, while I was sick, the doctor had left orders for my medicine to be given me during the night, and my feet bathed with warm water. He stayed all night with me. He had the vessel of warm water brought, pulled oif his coat, rolled up his sleeves, to wash my feet. I objected, the servant being present. He replied, ' My Master washed His disciples' feet, and I would follow His glorious example,' and insisted that he should do so. During the time which he spent with me in my sick room, he gave me much of his early history." Houston soon began to be a figure in public life* 26 SAM HOUSTON His remarkable gifts for popularity, the impressive- ness and friendliness of his manners, his natural powers of adaptability to all societies, which made him as much at home while telling stories on a store-box or a wagon tongue as in a parlor, and his cultivated dignity of port and gesture gave him the essentials of political success. He was, besides, the friend and devoted follower of Andrew Jackson, who exercised a sort of political kingship in Tennessee in those days. While practicing law in Lebanon he was, in 1819, appointed Adjutant-General of the State with the rank of colonel, and in October of the same year he was elected prosecuting attorney for the Davidson District, which necessitated his removal to Nashville. After his curious egotistical and sentimental fashion he addressed a farewell to the citizens of Lebanon from the court-house steps, in which he said, " I was naked and ye clothed me ; I was hungry and ye fed me ; I was athirst and ye gave me drink," and moved the hearts of his hearers to such a degree that, accord- ing to the contemporary account, " there was not a dry eye in the whole assembly." Houston performed his duties as prosecuting attorney with success and eclat, but resigned the office on account of the in- sufficiency of the fees. He continued the practice of law in Nashville, and in 1821 was elected major- general of the Tennessee militia, a wholly political and mainly' honorary office. In 1823, when thirty years of age, Houston was elected a Kepresentative to Congress from the ninth MEMBER OF CONGRESS 27 district of Tennessee under the new apportionment. Houston served in Congress for four years without special distinction, occasionally taking part in the de- bates, and acting as a member of the Jackson wing of the Democratic party. Jackson had been elected a Senator by the Tennessee legislature shortly after Houston's election as Eepresentative, and both were members of the Committee on Military Affairs. Houston in common with the other Jacksonian mem- bers opposed the resolution offered by Henry Clay, then Speaker of the House, for an inquiry into his political conduct, made personal by the charges of George Kremer, a Representative from Pennsylvania, in the newspapers, of a corrupt bargain by which John Quincy Adams was to be elected President and Clay made Secretary of State. Houston issued an address to his constituents giving as reasons for this opposition that it would be simply a political investi- gation and that the proper remedy for the personal grievance would be found in the courts. The main purpose of the circular, however, was to intensify the populai? indignation at the defeat of Jackson, who had obtained a plurality of the electoral votes, and to strengthen the feeling which carried Jackson into the presidential chair at the next election by an over- whelming majority. Houston's address was written in that forcible and dignified language, which he always had at his command when dealing with questions of state, and indicated that he had received a valuable education in the comprehension and treatment of pub- 28 SAM HOUSTON lie affairs by liis experience in the halls of Congress. Congress at that time contained a number of notable men, including Daniel Webster, Henry Clay, John Randolph, the veteran of the House, the venerable Nathaniel Macon, and others, and the debates and the consideration of public affairs were on a plane which could not but have afforded a man of Houston's quickness of mind and enlarging capacity very impor- tant lessons of comprehension and dignity. Houston's eccentricities were generally kept for an appropriate audience, and there is no reason to doubt that as a Representative in Congress he conducted himself as a sober-minded and practical legislator, if he did not distinguish himself beyond the lines of a political fol- lower of Andrew Jackson, or make a special mark as a debater. It was during Houston's second term as a member of Congress that his first and only serious duel took place. The appointments of postmasters under the new Federal Administration were naturally not of the Jackson-Houston party. One Colonel Irwin had been appointed postmaster at Nashville, and Houston had expressed his opinion about him with that vigor which always characterized his animadversions upon his political opponents. Houston's words were car- ried to Colonel Irwin, and it was understood that he would hold him personally responsible for them on his return to Tennessee. Colonel Irwin selected as the bearer of his challenge one Colonel John T. Smith, a noted desperado of Missouri ; Houston's MEMBER OF CONGRESS 29 friend, Colonel McGregor, refused to accept the challenge from Smith's hands. The challenge was offered and refused in front of the Nashville Inn, McGregor dropping the paper to the ground as it was handed to him. No encounter followed between Smith and McGregor, as was expected, and the news of the action was taken to Houston, who was in a room of the inn with some of his friends. General William White, who was present, expressed himself to the effect that Smith had not been treated with proper courtesy. Houston overheard the remark, and said to White, " If you, sir, have any grievance, I will give you any satisfaction you may demand." White replied, " I have nothing to do with your diffi- culty, but I presume you know what is due from one gentleman to another." Nothing farther followed at the time, and it was soon spread about the streets of Nashville that Houston had " backed down " General White. This attack upon his courage reached the ears of General White, and he sent a challenge to Houston, which was promptly accepted. An attempt was made by the sheriff to arrest them both for the preservation of the peace, but Houston escaped to the house of a friend in an adjoining county, and sent word to White, who had also evaded arrest, that he was ready to meet him across the state line in Ken- tucky. The duel was fought at sunrise, September 23, 1826, at a noted dueling - ground in Simpson County known by the name of Linkumpinch, just across the Tennessee line, and on the road from Nash- 30 SAM HOUSTON ville to Bowling Green. White was severely, and it was supposed at first mortally, wounded, having been shot through the body at the hip. Houston escaped untouched. As they took their places to fire Houston was observed to slij) something into his mouth w^hich he afterward explained was a bullet, which he had placed between his teeth on the advice of Jackson, who said that it was good to have something in the mouth to bite on, — " It will make you aim better." On the evening of the day of the fight a large crowd was gathered at the Nashville Inn to hear the news, and among them General Jackson. Presently one John G. Anderson, " a noted character " and a friend of Houston's, who had witnessed the duel, came dashing over the bridge on horseback with the news that Houston was unharmed and White mor- tally wounded. The grand jury of Simpson County in June, 1827, brought in an indictment against Houston for felony in shooting at William White with intent to kill, and the Governor of Kentucky issued a requisition on the Governor of Tennessee for his surrender. It was not complied with on the ground that the facts showed that Houston had " acted in self-defefise." In fact a prosecution for such an offense in those dueling days must have been understood as a farce, and the fight undoubt- edly increased Houston's popularity as an evidence of his "game." Houston's bitter and abusive tongue frequently got him into personal difficulties in which the " satisfac- MEMBER OF CONGRESS 31 tion of a gentleman " was demanded by his antago- nists ; but be never fought again, while sober, and was equally ready with a lofty assumption of dignity or a joke to avoid the necessity. To a challenge from a political inferior in Texas he rej)lied that he " never fought down hill." On another occasion, when called to account by a gentleman whom he had been de- nouncing, he said, " Why, H., I thought you were a friend of mine." " So I was, but I do not propose to be abused by you or anybody else." " Well, I should like to know," said Houston, " if a man can't abuse his friends, who in h — he can abuse," and the affair ended in a laugh. Mr. John J. Linn in his " Remi- niscences of Fifty Years in Texas " tells the story that Houston and ex-President Burnet had an acri- monious newspaper controversy in which they bandied abusive epithets until finally Houston accused Burnet of being a " hog-thief." There was no retort in Texan phraseology capable of over-matching this, and Burnet sent a challenge to Houston by Dr. Branch T. Archer. " What does he predicate the demand upon ? " said Houston in his loftiest manner. Archer replied that it was for his abuse of Mr. Burnet. " Has n't he abused me to an equal degree ? He has done so pub- licly and privately until I am compelled to believe that the people are equally disgusted with both of us." Houston's dignity of manner overpowered Archer, and he took back the challenge. Houston received challenges from President Lamar, General Albert Sidney Johnston and Commodore E. W. Moore of 32 SAM HOUSTON the Texas navy, and a good many others, whicli lie did not accept. On one occasion being visited by a gentleman with a warlike message, he took the chal- lenge and handed it to his private secretary with in- structions to indorse it " number fourteen," and file it away. He then informed the expectant gentleman that his affair must wait its turn until the previous thirteen had been disposed of. It is perhaps a won- der that he preserved his reputation for courage in such a community as that of Texas, while persist- ently declining to fight, but it does not seem to have been seriously doubted. In a speech to his constitu- ents at Tellico, after his duel with White, Houston said that he was opposed to dueling, but had been compelled to fight in defense of his honor. " Thank God," he said, " that my antagonist was injured no worse." There is no record of how his affair with the Nashville postmaster terminated, but it certainly led to no more fighting. This same year, 1827, Houston was elected gov- ernor of Tennessee by a majority of 12,000 over New- ton Cannon, and Willie Blount, the old " war gover- nor." Houston doubtless owed much to his personal popularity, but his nomination and election were due to the fact that he was the representative of the per- sonal party of Andrew Jackson, which his compet- itors opposed. Of his appearance at the time of his election there is a vivid and minute portrait in the reminiscences of Colonel D. D. Claiborne of Goliad, Texas, who saw him with the eager and impression- GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE 33 able eyes of a boy. It shows Houston in that theatri- cal and sensational manner of dress which was a characteristic of him as long as he lived, and which only his magnificent physique and lofty manner could have prevented from seeming ridiculous and puerile. Says Colonel Claiborne : — " He wore on that day (August 2, 1827) a tall, bell-crowned, medium-brimmed, shining black beaver hat, shining black patent-leather military stock or cravat, incased by a standing collar, ruffled shirt, black satin vest, shining black silk pants gathered to the waistband with legs full, same size from seat to ankle, and a gorgeous, red-ground, many-colored gown or Indian hunting-shirt, fastened at the waist by a huge red sash covered with fancy bead-work, with an immense silver buckle, embroidered silk stockings, and pumps with large silver buckles. Mounted on a superb dapple-gray horse he appeared at the election unannounced, and was the observed of all observers." But however bizarre and fantastic was Houston's appearance on election day, his practical good sense and statesmanship were manifested in the office ; and his executive administration was successful, and his legislative recommendations conservative. Houston was a candidate for reelection for a second term against the formidable opposition of General William Carroll, who had commanded the left wing of Jackson's army at New Orleans, and had been Governor of Tennessee for three terms previous to Houston's election ; he was ineligible for the fourth 34 SAM HOUSTON term in succession owing to the prohibitive provision of the State Constitution. The canvass was proceed- ing, apparently in Houston's favor, when the event occurred which put an end to his successful career as a politician in Tennessee, and apparently ruined him forever. On the 16th of April, 1829, he sent in his resignation to the Secretary of State. In January of that year Houston had been married to a Miss Eliza Allen, daughter of a wealthy and influential family of Sumner County, which was numbered among his polit- ical friends and adherents. After three months of marriage his wife left him and returned to her father's house. Houston wrote to her father, asking him to persuade his wife to return, but she refused, and he threw up his hold on fortune and life. The cause of the trouble between Houston and his wife has never been definitely revealed. The only words which he ever wrote on the matter were contained in a letter in which he said : " Eliza stands acquitted by me. I have received her as a virtuous, chaste wife, and as such I pray God I may ever regard her, and I trust I ever shall. She was cold to me, and I thought did not love me." The most probable explanation is that the young lady had been induced to marry Houston to gratify the desires of her parents, who were attracted by his brilliant political position and prospects, while her affections had been given to another. The inti- macy of married life revealed her coldness or repug- nance to her husband, and in a moment of quarrel she avowed the truth, and left him. Houston's " high- GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE 35 strung " spirit and personal vanity were deeply wounded, and he acted with all the dramatic inten- sity of his nature. There was the wildest excitement in the frontier community over such an explosion of scandal. Houston's enemies circulated the most outrageous reports concerning his conduct, and the mystery, as it generally is, was interpreted at its worst. For a time there was the prospect that he would be sub- ject to personal violence and that there would be bloody affrays in the streets of Nashville over the affair. His friends rallied around him, but he left Nashville in secret, some say in disguise, and went to bury himself among his old friends, the Cherokees, a portion of whom had removed from their homes in Tennessee to the Indian Territory. Nothing could ever be extracted from Houston as to the cause of the separation between himself and his mfe, even when he had lost his self-control from drink, and whenever he spoke of her it was in the most respectful terms. Sometimes he took the in- quiries good-humoredly, as when he replied to Hon. J. H. Reagan, afterward Postmaster-General of the Confederacy and United States Senator, who, while traveling with him in Texas on the way to a con- ference with the Indians at Grapevine Springs, had called his attention to a long, pretended account of the affair in a newspaper. Houston merely said, " There has been a great deal written on that subject by men who know nothing about it. It is an absolute 36 SAM HOUSTON secret and will always remain so." At other times he resented an inquiry as an unwarranted obtrusion into his private affairs. During his early residence in Texas, and when he. had no home of his own, Houston spent a good deal of his time at the house of Colonel Phil Sublett at San Augustine. One night he came home so intoxicated that he was un- able to mount to his chamber, and was accommodated with a pallet on the floor. Colonel Sublett thought this a good ojDportunity to obtain a knowledge of the mystery, and began to question him on the sub- ject. This sobered as well as angered Houston, and he called for his horse, declaring that he would not remain longer in a house where an attempt was made to take advantage of his condition to extract his secret, and he was with difficulty pacified by an apology. Mrs. Houston secured a divorce from Houston on the ground of abandonment, and afterward married a Dr. Douglass. She lived for many years in the town of Gallatin, Tennessee, and enjoyed the entire respect and esteem of the community. She was equally silent as to the cause of the separation of herself and her first husband. CHAPTER IV INDIAN LIFE — THE STANBERRY AFFAIR Houston went by steamboat to tbe mouth of the Arkansas, not being recognized on the way except at Napoleon, where he was seen by a friend from whom he exacted a promise not to betray his identity ; from thence he traveled by way of Little Rock, where he addressed a farewell letter to General Jackson, to the mouth of the Illinois Bayou, which flows into the Arkansas about thirty miles below Fort Gibson. Here was a settlement of the Cherokees, who had pre- ceded the forced emigration of the tribe in 1838, and settled in Arkansas and the Indian Territory. A treaty had been made on their behalf with the Osages in order to secure them a location, and, after some quarrels and skirmishes with that tribe, they had set- tled into permanent and peaceful residence. At the mouth of the Illinois was Tah-lon-tees-kee, the principal town and council house of the tribe, and the residence of Oo-loo-tee-kah, or, as he was better known by his English name, John Jolly, the sub-chief, who had received Houston into his family when a boy in Tennessee, and had now become the principal chief of the western fragment of the tribe. He gave a hearty welcome to his adopted son in his 38 SAM HOUSTON second flight for refuge among the tribe, and Houston took up his residence with him, resuming his Indian name of Co-lon-neh, or the Raven, and the dress and habits of the savage. The chief, John Jolly, is de- scribed as a man of great intelligence and force of character, and was at that time about sixty years of age, of massive frame, although not tall, with a rotund but commanding countenance, and his long locks plentifully sprinkled with gray. He spoke no English, and had none of the civilized education which some of the members of the tribe at that time possessed. His cabin was under a magnificent grove of cotton- woods and sycamores at the confluence of the streams, and he cultivated a clearing and kept a large herd of cattle, his wealth also comprising twelve negro slaves, whom he had brought with him from Tennessee. He lived in the patriarchal Indian fashion, and he and Houston have been seen seated on the floor together, feeding with their spoons from the trough of ka-nau- hee-na, or hominy boiled to the consistency of paste, which was always kept replenished in the centre of the cabin. Houston lived with John Jolly for upward of a year, was formally adopted as a member of the tribe, and took part in its counsels and deliberations. At this time the eastern Cherokees had adopted a sys- tem of government with a constitution and laws after the model of those of their white neighbors ; but the western Cherokees still managed their affairs after the aboriginal fashion. They had a principal chief and INDIAN LIFE 39 sub-chiefs, wlio were the natural leaders in war and council, but their authority was very limited, and the actual government was by a republic in which the tribe decided all matters of importance by discussion and vote in a general council. The chief matters decided at the sessions of the council, which were held in an open shed, roofed with branches, were the relations of the tribe with the United States, as represented by its agents and contractors, and with neighboring Indian tribes, propositions for grants of land to missionary stations and schools, the mainte- nance of formal intercourse with the eastern Chero- kees, and such matters; and it also administered a rude justice for murder and theft by the bullet and the lash. It is said that Houston did not take a very promi- nent part in the deliberations of the council, and this was probably due to that feeling of jealousy toward the members of an alien race which would be nat- ural among the native Indians. He preserved the fondness for dress and display among the Indians which he had shown among the whites. The Chero- kees did not paint their faces and wear scalp-locks like their neighbors, the Osages, but they wore the blankets, buckskin hunting - shirts, leggings and moccasins, and adorned their hair with the feathers of the eagle and wild turkey. On state occasions Houston appeared m all the glory of an Indian brave. He has been described as wearing in full dress a white hunting-shirt brilliantly embroidered, yellow leggings, \ 40 SA. STON and moccasins elabort red blanket, and a c his head. He let his queue which hung do on his chin, shaving t. \e are very quick to ridi ners, and Houston's lu. did not escape their council meeting they of his attire, and stati he imitated his pose z the assembly. Housi tator with shrewd in repeated. Houston did not sii k the public attention, the forests of the In , and the dramatic mf:.; public life, made his jecture and rumor, { the centre of all sortr Among them was a province of Mexico and this took such with some uneasinesf structed a governme to him on the subjei alluding to it, which confidence in his f ri misfortunes. Jackso pked with beads, a huge turkey feathers around >w, and wore it in a long »ack, and wore his beard rase V >f his face. The Indians tricks of ways and man- o• 132 SAM HOUSTON supplies expected from New Orleans had not arrived at Copano. Houston issued orders for the concen- tration of the troops at Refugio, where beef at least could be obtained, but had great difficulty in per- suading the men to march on account of their discon- tent at the failure of the government to provide them with either food or clothing. A message was received from Colonel Neill, in command at San Antonio, that he expected to be attacked by a large force of the enemy, and Houston dispatched Colonel Bowie to his assistance. He ordered Colonel Neill to demolish the fortifications of the Alamo, and bring off the artillery. Colonel Neill replied that he had no teams with which to move the guns, and the garrison re- mained in the Alamo. Governor Smith sent Lieu- tenant-Colonel Travis, who had been stationed on recruiting service at San Felipe, with a small party to reinforce the garrison. Colonel Neill returned to his home, and Travis assumed the command. While Houston was at Refugio endeavoring to bring some order out of the confusion and disorganization, Colo- nel Johnson arrived and exhibited the resolutions of the Council empowering him to take command of the expedition against Matamoras. Houston at the same time was informed of the deposition of Governor Smith. He considered that it would be useless to attempt to accomplish anything in such a conflict of authority, and that by remaining with the army he would be simply held responsible for the failures which would inevitably follow, without any power to FAILURE OF OPERATIONS 138 prevent them. He addressed the vokmteers, dis- couraging the expedition against Matamoras, and returned to his headquarters at Washington, from whence he forwarded a communication to Governor Smith, giving an account of his proceedings, and arguing strongly against the competency of the Coun- cil to depose the Governor. While at Refugio he had been elected by the citizens a delegate to the Convention to be held March 1. The proposed expedition to Matamoras came to nothing. Johnson and Fannin were unable to agree as to who should have the command, and the volun- teers were so much discouraged by Houston's speech, pointing out the folly and inevitable failure of the expedition, that they refused to march. Johnson was left with only sixty men, and abandoned his en- terprise. Fannin remained with the volunteers from the United States for the defense of Goliad, but at- tempted no active operations. Grant and his men occupied themselves with raids for the stealing of horses. The commissioners to solicit aid in the United States met with a good deal of success. Austin made addresses in some of the principal cities, and the moderation as well as earnestness of their tone had a good effect upon the conservative opinion of the country, and relieved the revolt of the Texans from the imputation of being a filibuster enterprise. Sub- scriptions of money and arms were given to some ex- tent, and there was a warm feeling of sympathy for 134 SAM HOUSTON the success of the colonists in the struggle. The commissioners succeeded in negotiating a loan of 8200,000 in New Orleans, Austin pledging his pri- vate fortune as security. Of this they obtained 820,000 in cash, and later they effected a loan of 850,000 in cash. With these funds they purchased supplies, which kept the army from entirely falling to pieces. "While Houston had virtually given up the com- mand of the army, he was enabled to perform an im- portant service for the success of the colonists in their struggle. The Indians in eastern Texas, who in- cluded the Cherokees and other fragments of tribes driven from the United States, constituted a very formidable body. They were jealous of the aggres- sions of the colonists upon the lands, which had been granted them by the Mexican government, and were on friendly terms with the Mexican agents stationed among them. It was highly important that they should be conciliated and rendered passive, if not actively friendly, to the colonists. On November 13, the Consultation adopted a "Solemn Declaration" in regard to the rights of these Indians, to which each member subscribed his name. The declaration is in the handwriting of Houston, and was undoubtedly adopted by his influence. It reads : — "We solemnly declare that the boundaries of the claims of the said Indians are as follows, to wit, being north of the San Antonio road and the Neches, and west of the Angelina and Sabine rivers. We TREATY WITH INDIANS 135 solemnly declare that the Governor and General Council immediately on its organization shall ap- point commissioners to treat with the said Indians to establish the definite boundaries of their territory, and secure their confidence and friendship. We solemnly declare that we will guarantee to them the peaceable enjoyment of their rights and their lands as we do our own. We solemnly declare that all grants, surveys, and locations within the bounds here- inbefore mentioned, made after the settlement of the said Indians, are and of right ought to be utterly null and void, and the commissioners issuing the same be and are hereby ordered immediately to recall and cancel the same, as having been made upon lands already appropriated by the Mexican government. We solemnly declare that it is our sincere desire that the Cherokee Indians and their associate bands should remain our friends in peace and war, and if they do so we pledge the public faith to the support of the foregoing declaration. We solemnly declare that they are entitled to our commiseration and protection, as the first owners of the soil, as an unfortunate race of people, that we wish to hold as friends and treat with justice." Samuel Houston, John Forbes, and John Cameron were , ointed commissioners to treat with the In- dian 'JM this basis. Aitc Houston's return to Washington he was gi^ a furlough by Governor Smith until March 1, ai lirected to carry out his instructions as one 136 SAM HOUSTON of the commissioners -to treat with the Indians. Houston and Forbes visited the Indians, and held a grand council of the tribes at the village of Bowles, the chief of the Cherokees, where a treaty was con- cluded February 23, on the basis of the "Solemn Declaration." This kept the Indians quiet during the struggle, and it is perhaps needless to say that the treaty was repudiated by the Texan Congress after it was over. CHAPTER IX FALL OF THE ALAMO — CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC While the government and military organization of Texas had fallen into a condition of confusion and anarchy, Santa Anna had been consolidating the power in Mexico. The new Constitution abolished the state legislatures, and preserved only the forms of a federal government in a department council and governors of provinces appointed by the Presi- dent. The President was the supreme authority and absolute dictator in all but the name. The republi- can party was completely cowed, and the majority of the people of Mexico accepted the destruction of their liberties without a murmur, and even apparently with approval. Having completed this work, Santa Anna turned his attention to the subjugation of Texas, where alone his authority was resisted. He com- menced the concentration of troops at San Luis Potosi early in December, and dispatched the first brigade under the command of General Sesma for the relief of General Cos, then besieged in San An- tonio. Cos's retreating forces were met at the Eio Grande, and Sesma halted there to await the arrival of the remainder of the army. The other two bri- 138 SAM HOUSTON gades, with the cavalry and artillery, were concen- trated at Saltillo, and Santa Anna took the command in person. General Vincente Filisola, an Italian, who had been for some time in the service of Mexico, and was the empresario of a grant of land in Texas, was appointed second in command. General Cas- trillon commanded the artillery, and General Au- drade the cavalry. Generals Tolsa and Gaona com- manded the second and third brigades. The troops were the best in the Mexican army, veterans of the civil war, and disciplined so far as the system of ser- vice was capable of doing it. From Saltillo Santa Anna dispatched General Urrea with 200 cavalry to Matamoras, with instructions to take command of the troops there, and move north to attack Refugio and Goliad. Early in February, Santa Anna reached Monova with his army, consisting of about 4000 men, and set out with an escort of fifty cavalry to join General Cos and General Sesma on the Rio Grande. When the army was consolidated with the troops under Cos and Sesma it numbered between 6000 and 7000 men. The march of the Mexican army from Monova to San Antonio, a distance of nearly 600 miles, was a most painful and trying one. The greater portion of the country was almost a des- ert, without inhabitants, except a few scattered vil- lages, a barren plain without shelter and almost with- out water. It was the dead of winter, and the snow and sleet and piercing "northers" swept down upon the thinly clad and unacclimated troops. In accord- FALL OF THE ALAMO 139 ance with the Mexican custom, a great crowd of women, wives of the soldiers, and camp followers ac- companied the march, and added to the distress and difficulty. In spite of rapacious demands upon the inhabitants of the villages, food fell short, and the army was put on half rations. The animals died in great numbers, and it was with extreme difficulty that the cannons and wagons were dragged along. But the imperious energy of Santa Anna whipped the army along, and the advance guard appeared be- fore San Antonio on February 22. The garrison was taken by surprise. No scouting parties had been sent out, and so careless were the Texans that they had been attending a fandango two nights before, while Santa Anna was encamped on the Medina. He was informed of the condition of the garrison, and attempted to move forward for the sur- prise of the place during the night. But the ammu- nition wagons were on the west side of the river, the stream was swollen, and a heavy norther was blowing, so that he gave up his design. The first knowledge of the approach of the Mexican army was from the sentinels on the roof of the church. Their alarm was disbelieved at first, and two horsemen were sent out to reconnoitre. They came upon the enemy at Prospect Hill, an eminence a short distance west of the town, and were pursued by the Mexicans, one of them being thrown from his horse and breaking his arm. The garrison hastily retreated across the river to the Alamo, Lieutenant A. M. Dickenson catching 140 SAM HOUSTON up his wife and cliilcl on his horse at the door of a Mexican house. As the garrison crossed the plain they swept up with them thirty or forty beef cattle, and drove them into the plaza of the fortress. When Santa Anna reached San Antonio he sent a flag with a demand for the immediate surrender of the Mis- sion. Travis dispatched Major Morris and Captain Marten to meet the flag, and on the return of his messengers gave his answer by an emphatic "no" from a cannon shot. The blood-red flag of "no quar- ter" was hoisted on the tower of the church of San Fernando, and the siege was begun by a cannonade from the Mexican guns. The Mission of the Alamo, which signifies the cot- tonwood-tree, was established, where it then stood, in 1722. It had been founded by the Franciscan friars from the college at Queretaro in 1710, in the valley of the Eio Grande, and after several removals on account of the scarcity of water and the attacks of the Indians, it had been finally located at San An- tonio. The buildings of the Mission consisted of a church in the usual form of a cross, with walls of hewn stone, five feet thick, and twenty-two and a half feet high. The church faced to the westward, toward the river and the town. The central portion of the church was roofless at the time of the siege ; but arched rooms on each side of the entrance and the sacristy, which was used as a powder magazine, were strongly covered with a roof of masonry. The windows were high up from the floor, and close and FALL OF THE ALAMO 141 narrow, to protect the congregation from the flights of Indian arrows. The front was decorated with bat- tered carvings and stone images, and the entrance was barred by heavy oaken doors. Adjoining the church on the left and touching the wing of the cross formed by its walls was the convent yard, an inclos- ure about a hundred feet square, with walls sixteen feet high and three and a half feet thick, strength- ened on the inside with an embankment of earth to half their height. At the farther or southeastern corner of the convent yard was a sally port, defended by a small redoubt. The convent and hospital build- ing, of adobe bricks, two stories in height and eight- een feet in width, extended along the west side of the yard to the distance of 191 feet. It contained one long room in the hospital, and a number of small rooms and cells. The main plaza extended in front of the church and convent in the form of a parallelo- gram, with its side toward the river, and covered between two and three acres. It was inclosed by a wall eight feet high and thirty-three inches thick. On the southern end of the plaza were buildings used as a prison and barracks, and a heavy stockade of cedar logs had been planted from this corner of the plaza, which extended some twenty yards beyond the line of the church, diagonally to the corner of the church, and protected the entrance. Other build- ings and houses occupied places on the inside of the wall of the plaza, but were not of much strength or consequence. The Mission was entirely isolated 142 SAM HOUSTON from the town, which was wholly on the west bank of the river, with the exception of a few miserable jacals on the eastern bank. There was a plentiful supply to water from the acequias, one on the south connecting with a ditch through the plaza, and the other skirting with its shallow, greenish stream the east end of the church. To defend this extensive place Travis had fourteen pieces of artillery. These were mounted on the walls of the church fronting north, south, and east; two were planted at the stockade, and two at the main entrance to the plaza; four defended the redoubt at the entrance to the convent yard, and others were placed at various points along the walls. There were no redoubts or bastions, except the single outwork in front of the sally port to the convent yard. It was evidently impossible to defend so wide a space with so small a garrison, and the defense was mainly con- centrated about the church and convent. Travis had been as careless about his supply of provisions as about his guard. Only three bushels of corn were at first found in the Alamo, but some eighty or ninety bushels were afterward discovered in one of the houses. The garrison, when it entered the Alamo, consisted of 145 men. The garrison comprised the men who had remained after the departure of the expedition under Grant, and such volunteers as had since strag- gled in. They had no training in arms, except in the use of the rifle, which was a necessity of their THE ALAMO MISSION I. Alamo Church. 2. Convent. 3. Inclosure or Plaza. 4 and 5. Prison and Entrance Gate. 6. House and Wall. '7, Powder Magazine. 9. Stockade. 10. Redoubt. FALL OF THE ALAMO 143 daily existence. Tliey were without definite military organization, and were only held together by a com- mon heroic purpose. The commander, Lieutenant- Colonel William Barrett Travis, was a native of North Carolina, twenty-eight years of age, and by profession a lawyer. He had taken a prominent part in the early troubles with the Mexican authorities, and was on the proscribed list of Santa Anna. In appearance he was six feet in height, erect and manly in figure, with blue eyes, reddish hair, and round face. The second in command was Colonel James Bowie, famous all over the West as the inventor of the terrible knife which bote his name. He was a native of Georgia, but removed to Chata- houla parish in Louisiana. While there he fought a desperate duel with one Norris W^right on a sand bar in the Mississippi. Bowie was shot down, and Wright bent down to dispatch him, when Bowie drew his knife and stabbed him to the heart. Bowie ac- companied Long's filibuster expedition to Texas, and afterward remained in the territory, engaged in smuggling African slaves from Galveston and in va- rious adventures. He had a prolonged and desperate fight with the Comanches, while at the head of a party in search of the old San Saba gold mines, and his hardihood and courage had become proverbial. He was a large, fair man, and, like many of the early Texans, occasionally worked off the fervor of his animal spirits by tremendous debauches of drink- ing. Another very notable figure among the defend- 144 SAM HOUSTON ers of the Alamo was David Crockett. Crockett was a native of Tennessee, where he was born August 17, 1776. He had spent his life in the woods, and was a mighty deer and bear hunter. He had also served as a soldier in the war of 1812. Without education, he had a shrewd and taking humor, and a great gift for popularity among the rude frontier population. He was a sort of king at the shooting matches and other rustic gatherings, and became a frontier politi- cian. He was elected to the state legislature, and afterward for two terms as a Eepresentative in Con- gress, where he figured as a sort of eccentric curios- ity. He was shrewd enough to exploit his character- istics as a backwoodsman, and was exhibited as a lion in Washington society. He visited the North on a popular tour, and published several books de- tailing his life and adventures, and a political bur- lesque biography of Martin Van Bur en, written in a quaint and forcible style.^ He was so impolitic as to set himself in opposition to the authority of President Jackson, and was defeated in his attempt to secure a third election to Congress. He resolved to try and renew his fortunes in Texas, and came to the territory in 1836. He arrived with twelve Tennesseeans at San Antonio about three weeks before the opening of the siege of the Alamo. In person he was tall and s]3are, with black hair and angular features ex- pressive of his shrewd humor. He dressed in buck- ^ The book purporting- to be written by Crockett, and describing- his adventures in Texas, is obviously a fabrication. FALL OF THE ALAMO 145 skin, carried his favorite long rifle "Betsy," and was conspicuous by his coonskin cap. Another man of distinction among the defenders of the Alamo was Colonel J. B. Bonham, of South Carolina, who had responded to the call of Texas for volunteers, and arrived in San Antonio shortly before the commence- ment of the siege. Santa Anna commenced his operations by erecting batteries for his fieldpieces, but did not make a com- plete investment of the Mission! The defenders occasionally re;^lied with their cannon, but in the main depended upon their rifles, which seldom missed their mark. General Castrillon, under orders from Santa Anna, attempted to build a bridge across the river from the timbers of the houses. The party was within the reach of the rifles of the Texans, and in a few minutes thirty were killed. The survivors were withdrawn. Travis sent the following appeal for assistance to the government, which has a stirring and heroic ring : — TO THE PEOPLE OF TEXAS AND ALL AMERICANS IN THE WORLD. Command ANCY of the Alamo, Bexar, February 24, 1836. Fellow-Citizens and Compatriots, — I am be- sieged by a thousand or more of the Mexicans under Santa Anna. I have sustained a continued bombard- ment for twenty -four hours, and have not lost a man. 146 SAM HOUSTON The enemy have demanded a surrender at discretion ; otherwise the garrison is to be put to the sword if the place is taken. I have answered the summons with a cannon shot, and our flag still waves proudly from the walls. / shall never surrender or retreat. Then I call on you in the name of liberty, of patriotism, and of everything dear to the American character, to come to our aid with all dispatch. The enemy are receiving reinforcements daily, and will no doubt in- crease to three or four thousand in four or five days. Though this call may be neglected, I am determined to sustain myself as long as possible, and die like a soldier who never forgets what is due to his own honor and that of his country. Victory or death ! W. Bareett Travis, Lieutenant- Colonel, Commanding, P. S. The Lord is on our side. When the army appeared in sight we had not three bushels of corn. We have since found in deserted houses eighty or ninety bushels, and got into the walls twenty or thirty beeves.^ 1 The letter, in a firm and bold handwriting, now among- the state archives at Austin, has the following indorsements on the back by the couriers, who forwarded it : — " Since the above was written I heard a very heavy cannonade dur- ing the whole day. Think there must have been an attack on the Alamo. We were short of ammunition when I left. Hurry all the men you can forth. When I left there were but 150 men determined to do or die. To-morrow I leave for Bexar with what men I can. Almonte is there. The troops are commanded by General Sesma. Albert Martin." FALL OF THE ALAMO 147 Colonel Bonham was also dispatcliecl witli a mes- sage to Colonel Fannin at Goliad asking him to come to the assistance of the garrison. On the 25th Santa Anna endeavored to erect a battery 300 yards south of the main entrance to the plaza, and a sharp skirmish took place in which eight Mexicans were killed. The enemy succeeded in erecting the battery during the night, and also one near the old powder house to the southeast. The same night the Mexican cavalry were stationed on the road leading to the east. On the 26th there was a skirmish between the Texans and the Mexican cav- alry on the eastern road, and during the night a party sallied out and burnt the jacals on the east side of the river, which had afforded shelter to the enemy. Santa Anna's troops continued to arrive, and the in- vestment of the Mission was made more complete. But it was not close enough to prevent the entrance of a party of thirty -two men from Gonzales, under Captain J. W. Smith, who stole their way through the enemy's lines, and joined the garrison on the night of March 1. On March 3, Colonel Bonham returned with a message from Colonel Fannin that he would march at once for the relief of the garrison. Fannin started on the 28th of February with 300 men and four pieces of artillery. His ammunition " I hope that every one will Rendeves at Gonzales as soon Possible as the Brave soldiers are suffering- ; don not forget the powder is very scarce and should not he delad one moment. L. Smither." 148 SAM HOUSTON wagon broke down, and he had not oxen enough to get his cannon across the river. The troops had no provisions except some rice and a little dried beef, and, after a council with his officers, Fannin decided to return to Goliad. On the 3d of March, Travis sent off his last message to the government : — / "I am still here in fine spirits and well-to-do. With 145 men, I have held the place against a force variously estimated from between 1500 to 6000, and I shall continue to hold it until I get relief from my countrymen, or I will perish in its defense. We have had a shower of bombs and cannon balls contin- ually falling among us the whole time ; yet none of us have fallen. We have been miraculously pre- served. . . . Again, I feel confident that the deter- mined spirit and desperate courage heretofore ex- hibited by my men will not fail them in the last struggle; and although they may be sacrificed to the vengeance of a Gothic enemy, the victory will cost that enemy so dear that it will be worse than a de- feat. ... A blood-red flag waves from the church of Bexar and in the camp above us, in token that the war is one of vengeance against rebels. . . . These threats have had no influence upon my men but to make all fight with desperation and with that high- souled courage which characterize the patriot who is willing to die in defense of his country ; liberty and his own honor; God and Texas; victory or death! " The enemy had effected but little by their cannon- ade, their guns being only fieldpieces of light calibre. FALL OF THE ALAMO 149 The garrison, however, was worn down by constant vigilance night and day, and frequent alarms in ex- pectation of an attack. After Santa Anna's troops had all arrived on March 2, they were given three days in which to rest after their weary march. On the 5th, Santa Anna held a council of war on the question of an immediate assault of the Alamo. A portion of the officers were in favor of awaiting the arrival of siege artillery, but Santa Anna determined on an assault the next day. On the morning of the 6th of March, Sunday, the forces for the assault were formed at four o'clock. The troops numbered 2500, and were divided into four columns. The first was under the command of General Cos, the second under Colonel Duque, the third under Colonel Eomero, and the fourth under Colonel Morales. The columns were supplied with scaling ladders, crowbars, and axes. The cavalry were drawn around the fort to prevent any attempt at escape. In the gray light of the morning the bugle sounded, and the bands struck up the Spanish air of Deguelo (Cut-throat), the signal of no quarter. Santa Anna witnessed the attack from the battery in front of the plaza. The troops dashed forward at a run, and were received with a deadly fire from the artillery and rifles. The column attacking the north- ern wall recoiled, and Colonel Duque was desperately wounded. The attacks on the eastern and western walls also failed, and the columns swarmed around to the north side. Here in a dense mass they were 150 SAM HOUSTON driven forward by the blows and shouts of their officers. Once more they recoiled before the fire, but at the third trial they scaled the wall, "tumbling over it like sheep." They carried the redoubt at the sally port, and swarmed into the convent yard, for- cing the Texans into the convent and hospital. The captured cannon were turned against the flimsy adobe walls, and the Mexicans stormed the breaches. The Texans fought from room to room, using their clubbed rifles and bowie knives so long as they had life left to strike. Colonel Travis and Colonel Bon- ham fell here. The Mexicans fired a howitzer loaded with grape twice into the long room of the hospital. Fifteen Texans were found dead in the room, and forty-two Mexicans on the outside. The last struggle took place in the church. The column attacking on the south side carried the stockade and poured into the church. Major T. C. Evans, the commander of the artillery, started for the magazine to blow up the building, as the defenders had agreed should be done at the last extremity, but was struck down by a musket shot as he was entering the door. Crockett was killed near the entrance, with his clubbed rifle in his hand. Bowie was lying, disabled by a fall from a platform, on a cot in the arched room to the left of the entrance. He was shot through the door as he lay on his bed firing his pistols. Mrs. Dickenson, wife of Lieutenant Dickenson, and her infant child had been placed in the opposite room for safety. A wounded man by the name of Walters fled into the FALL OF THE ALAMO 151 room. He was pursued by the Mexicans, who shot him, and then raised his body on their bayonets, "as a farmer does a bundle of fodder," until the blood ran down upon them. Mrs. Dickenson was protected by the interposition of Colonel Almonte. Mrs. Als- bury, a Mexican woman, niece and adopted daughter of the Vice-Governor Veramendi, and her little sister had gone to the Alamo with their brother-in-law, Colonel Bowie, and waited upon him after his injury. When the slaughter was over they came out of their hiding-place, and were protected by a Mexican officer. They were afterward recognized by a friend among the spectators, and taken to their home in San An- tonio. Mrs. Alsbury and her sister, Mrs. Dickenson and her child, a negro boy, servant of Colonel Travis, and a Mexican woman were the only persons spared by the Mexicans. At nine o'clock the Alamo had fallen. Santa Anna left the shelter of the battery and came upon the scene. Five persons, who had hid themselves, were brought before him. General Castrillon inter- ceded for their lives, but Santa Anna turned his back upon him with a reprimand for his weakness, and the Mexican soldiers dispatched them with their bayonets. After the slaughter the bodies of the dead Texans were collected by the order of Santa Anna, and piled together with alternate layers of wood. The mass was then heaped with dry brush and burned. The ashes and bones were left to the dogs and the vul- 152 SAM HOUSTON tures. A year later, wliat remained were placed in a coffin by order of Colonel Jolin Seguin, mayor of San Antonio, and buried with military honors. The number of the dead cannot be known with absolute accuracy. It was probably in the neighborhood of 180, of whom the names of 166 are known. Several couriers had been sent out during the siege, all of whom did not return. Captain J. W. Smith, of the Gonzales party, escaped with Travis's message of March 3, and it is possible that there were other mes- sengers, who were cut off by the Mexican cavalry. All the garrison were Americans except three Mexi- cans who had joined them from the town. The loss of the Mexicans in the assault has never been ascertained. Santa Anna, in his official report, said that there were only 70 killed and 300 wounded. Bu^ this was obviously an outrageous lie, as he also said that the Texans numbered 400, and that the attacking party consisted of only 1400. Various estimates give the loss of the Mexicans at between 300 and 500 killed, or who afterward died of their wounds. Dr. Bernard, who was taken prisoner at Goliad, and sent to attend the sick at San Antonio, said that the Mexican surgeons told him that over 400 wounded soldiers were brought into the hospitals after the assault. Sergeant Bercero, one of the at- tacking party, in giving his reminiscence of the as- sault, said : " There was an order to gather our dead and wounded. It was a painful sight. Our lifeless soldiers covered the ground surrounding the Alamo. FALL OF THE ALAMO 153 They were heaped inside the fortress. Blood and brains covered the earth and floor, and were spattered on the walls. The killed were generally struck on the head. The wounds were generally in the neck or shoulders, seldom below that." The defense of the Alamo was a mistake in stra- tegic warfare. It was impossible that the small gar- rison could successfully defend the post against the overwhelming force of Santa Anna's army. The defenders undoubtedly knew it. It is said that Travis drew them together, and addressed them in terms that could have left no doubt in their minds ; but whether that was so or not, they were aware that there was very little chance of their receiving succor from the Texan army. They could have made their escape, even after the investment of the Alamo, as easily as the party from Gonzales made their way into the fort. They could have found refuge in the timber of the streams, and with their skill in wood- craft have made their way safely south to the forces under Fannin at Goliad, or east to the settlements of the colonists. Their determination to remain was the impulse of their invincible courage, the strong vigor of their cool and desperate natures. They were ready to die in their tracks sooner than give way before an enemy they hated and despised, and they counted on the fight as only one of the many desper- ate chances of their lives. The lesson of the cost of taking the Alamo, and overwhelming its handful of defenders, would have warned Santa Anna, if he had 154 SAM HOUSTON boon loss headstrong and vainglorions, that the task of snbdning the Texan colonists was an impossible one. l>ut with its capture he seemed to think that the oonqiiest of Texas was already accomplished. He sent oft' bombastic dispatches to the anthorities in the city of Mexico, and, after giving orders to his snbor- dinates to complete the campaign, made preparations to retnrn. Mrs. Dickenson was fnrnishod with a horse, and made the bearer of a proclamation to the colonists, annonncing the captnre of the Alamo, and calling npon them to snbmit to the ^lexicaii anthor- ity. She crossed the prairies alone, with her child in her arms, nntil she reached the Salado Creek, where she came upon the negro servant of Travis, who had made his escape from the Mexicans, hiding in the woods. They made their way together to Gonzales. A change had t:\lven place in the minds of the lead- ing men in Texas in regard to the policy of a total separation from Mexico. It was discovered that the Liberal party in Mexico was utterly powerless, and that the people, almost without exception, were hos- tile to the American colonists, and wished them sub- dued. As early as January 7 Houston wrote to ^lajor eTolm Forbes, saying, ''I now feel confident that no further experiment need be made to con^dnce us that there is but one course left for Texas to pursue, and that is an unequivocal declaration of indepen- dence, and the formation of a constitution to be sub- mitted to the people for their rejection or ratifica- tion." Austin wrote a letter from New Orleans, CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 155 which was published in the newspaper, stating that when he left the country he considered it premature to stir the question of independence, but the news from Vera Cruz and Tampico was that the Liberal party had united with Santa Anna to put down the Texans. Public opinion in the United States was strongly in favor of a declaration of independence by Texas, and he could not have obtained the loan with- out the belief that the Convention would take such a course. Whatever difference of opinion there might have been as to the time for such action he hoped there would be none now. The colonists were thor- oughly disgusted with the quarrels of the Governor and Council, and anxious to have a new and more rigorous government. It is likely that the majority of them would have been ready at any time to throw off the Mexican authority, and separate from a coun- try with which they had no natural affiliation, and whose government they tolerated only so long as it left them practically alone. The General Convention called by the Council met at Washington, March 1, 1835. Fifty-eight dele- gates were present. Richard Ellis, of the Red River district, was elected president, and H. S. Kimble secretary. On the following day the declaration of independence was adopted. In its preamble it set forth the grievances of the people of Texas. It de- clared that the Federative Republic of Mexico had been changed without their consent to a consolidated military despotism, in which every interest was dis- 156 SAM HOUSTON regarded except that of the army and priesthood; that their agents bearing petitions had been thrown into dungeons; that the Mexican government had failed to maintain the right of trial by jury; denied the right of worshiping the Almighty according to the dictates of conscience; had made piratical attacks upon the Texan commerce; commanded the colonists to deliver up their arms necessary for their defense against the savages; had invaded their territory by sea and land; and had incited the merciless savages to massacre the defenseless inhabitants of the fron- tiers. It concluded : — "These and other grievances were patiently borne by the people of Texas until they reached the point at which forbearance ceases to be a virtue. We then took up arms in defense of the National Constitution. We appealed to our Mexican brethren for assistance; our appeal has been made in vain; although months have elapsed, no sympathetic response has yet been heard from the interior. We are therefore forced to the melancholy conclusion that the Mexican people have acquiesced in the destruction of their liberty, and the substitution therefor of a military govern- ment ; that they are unfit to be free and incapable of self-government. "The necessity of self-preservation, therefore, now decrees our eternal political separation. "We, therefore, the delegates, with plenary pow- ers, of the people of Texas, in solemn Convention assembled, appealing to a candid world for the neces- CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 157 sities of our condition, do hereby resolve and declare that our political connection with the Mexican nation has forever ended, and that the people of Texas do now constitute a free, sovereign, and independent Eepublic, and are fully invested with all the rights and attributes which properly belong to independent nations ; and, conscious of the rectitude of our inten- tions, we fearlessly and confidently commit the issue to the Supreme Arbiter of the destinies of nations." On the 4th of March, Sam Houston was unani- mously reelected commander-in-chief with authority over all the forces, regulars and volunteers. Ordi- nances were adopted for the reorganization of the army, and for the enrollment of all citizens between the ages of seventeen and fifty to be subject to drafts. Increased bounties of land were offered to volunteers : 1280 acres for those already enlisted, who should serve during the war, 640 acres for six months' ser- vice, and 320 acres for three months; 960 acres were offered for the new recruits who should serve during the war. There was great excitement over the news of the beleaguerment of the Alamo. On March^ 2 Houston issued the following appeal to the people of Texas : — Convention Hall, March 2, 1836. War is raging on the frontiers. Bexar is besieged by two thousand of the enemy under the command of General Sesma. Reinforcements are on their march to unite with the besieging army. By the last report 158 SAAI HOUSTON our force at Bexar was only one hundred and fifty men. The citizens of Texas must rally to the aid of our army or it will perish. Let the citizens of the East march to the combat. The enemy must be driven from our soil or desolation will accompany their march upon us. Independence is declared. It must be maintained. Immediate action, united with valor, can alone achieve our great work. The ser- vices of all are forthwith required in the field. Sam Houston, Oommander-in- Chief of the Army, P. S. It is rumored that the enemy are on their march to Gonzales, and that they have entered the colonies. The fate of Bexar is unknown. The coun- try must and shall be defended. The patriots of Texas are appealed to in hehalf of their bleeding country, A hundred or so of men were gathered about Washington, but there was no organization, and no attempt to march to the relief of the Alamo. On Sunday, March 6, the day of the fall of the Alamo, the letter of Colonel Travis making a last appeal for aid was handed to the president of the Convention. He hastily summoned the members together, and read it to them. There was a scene of intense feeling. Eobert Potter moved that the Convention adjourn, arm, and march for the relief of the Alamo. Hous- ton declared the resolution to be folly and treason to the people. He urged the Convention to re- CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 159 main and finisli its work of organizing the govern- ment, without which the declaration of independence would be a vain fulmination. He promised that no enemy should approach them, and announced his in- tention to start at once for Gonzales. The Conven- tion recovered from its excitement, and within an hour Houston was on his way to Gonzales, accom- panied only by Colonel George W. Hockley, his chief of staff, and one or two others. While on his way he dispatched a letter to the Convention advis- ing it to declare Texas a part of Louisiana under the treaty of 1803, and therefore belonging to the United States. The advice was not adopted, and it is not likely that it would have made any difference in the action of the United States, as that country had abandoned any such claim from Mexico. The Convention continued its work, and adopted a series of ordinances for the formation of a provi- sional government. David G. Burnet was elected President, and Lorenzo D. Zavala Vice-President. Samuel P. Carson was appointed Secretary of State, Baily Hardiman, Secretary of the Treasury, Thomas J. Kusk, Secretary of War, Eobert Potter, Secretary of the Navy, and David Thomas, Attorney-General. The government was authorized to contract for a loan of 11,000,000, to enter into treaties with foreign nations, and to decide upon the time for the election of permanent officers. The President issued a fervent appeal for sympathy and aid to the people of the United States. On the 16th, the Constitution of the 160 SAM HOUSTON Republic of Texas was adopted, and signed the fol- lowing day. It provided for tlie establishment of an Executive, a Legislature to consist of two bodies, Senate and House of Representatives, and a Judi- ciary to be governed by the common law of England. Slavery was established, and owners were forbidden to manumit their slaves without the consent of Con- gress. Free negroes were forbidden to reside in the territory. The importation of slaves, except from the United States, was punishable as piracy. The head rights of settlers were fixed at one league and a labor for each head of a family, and one third of a league to each single man of seventeen years of age or upwards, but the location of grants was suspended until the men serving in the army could have an equal choice. Freedom and equality for all forms of religious belief were decreed; the rights of trial by jury and writ of habeas corpus, except in cases of treason, and the freedom of the press were estab- lished. No man was to be imprisoned for debt, and titles of nobility and monopolies were forbidden. The Constitution was signed by fifty members, three of whom were Mexicans, and the Convention ad- journed on the 17th. The provisional government at once removed its headquarters to Harrisburg on the Buffalo Bayou. CHAPTER X THE MASSACEE OF GOLIAD Travis's morning and evening guns had ceased to send their signals over the prairie to the ears of the listening scouts from Gonzales five days before Hous- ton's arrival, and on the 11th of March, when he reached the town, definite news of the fall of the Alamo had been received from the mouth of Antonio Borgaro, a Mexican from San Antonio. Houston instantly sent off a swift dispatch with the news to Colonel Fannin at Goliad, with orders to blow up the fort and evacuate the place. He was directed to bring away as many pieces of artillery as he could, and sink the rest in the river. He was to march to Victoria on the Guadalupe River, intrench himself, and await further orders. Every facility was to be afforded to the women and children who wished to leave the place. Prompt action was urged, as the enemy were reported to be advancing, and there was likely to be a rise in the waters. On the 13th, Mrs. Dickenson reached Gonzales, and brought a confirma- tion of the news of the capture of the Alamo, and the slaughter of its defenders. There was a scene of wild grief and panic in the little town. The larger portion of its male citizens had formed the party 162 SAM HOUSTON which had joined the defenders of the Alamo, and perished with them. Twenty women were made widows by the slaughter, and almost every family had lost one of its members. There were rumors that the Mexican troops had reached the Cibolo Creek on their way to Gonzales, and preparations were made for immediate flight. Those who had wagons loaded them with such things as they could carry, and women mounted on horseback with their children in their arms for a wild flight across the prairie. One woman, who had lost her husband in the Alamo, rushed frantically about the streets with disheveled hair, screaming for the Mexicans to come and kill her and her children. Houston exerted himself to calm the violence, and bring some order out of the panic. When Houston reached Gonzales he found about 800 militia men gathered there without organi- zation, and about a hundred more had come in since. It was useless to attempt to resist the advance of Santa Anna with any such force, and Houston deter- mined to fall back to the line of the Colorado, and await the junction of the troops under Fannin. That night the troops were gathered together and, escorting the wagons containing the women and children, set out on the forlorn march over the wet prairie. Two small cannon were thrown into the river for the want of means to bring them away, and a single wagon, drawn by four feeble oxen, contained all the muni- tions and supplies of the army. After leaving the town it was set on fire, and as the band struggled on THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 163 in the darkness their backward glances could see the lights of their blazing homes on the horizon. Deaf Smith and Henry Karnes were left behind as scouts to watch for the approach of the Mexicans. The next day, at Peach Creek, fifteen miles from Gonzales, a party of 125 volunteers was met, twenty-five of whom left on hearing the news of the fall of the Alamo. Thirty -five more joined them during the day, making the number remaining with the force 474. When the party reached Nevada Creek, fifteen miles from the Colorado, Houston learned that a blind widow with six children had been ignorantly left at a house some distance from the road. He sent a party back to bring them in, and delayed his march until they ar- rived. He sent Major William T. Austin, his aid- de-camp, to the mouth of the Brazos for six cannon which were supposed to be there, and pushed on to the Colorado, which he reached on the 17th. He made his camp on the west bank of the river at a place known as Burnham's Crossing, and awaited the news from Fannin. While Santa Anna had been advancing upon San Antonio, General Urrea, with his escort of cavalry, had proceeded to Mat amor as, and taken command of the troops there for an advance to the north. He left Matamoras on February 18 with a force of be- tween 900 and 1000 men, and reached San Patricio on the 27th. He immediately asaulted the barracks in a storm of rain. The garrison of forty men, under Captain Peirce, made a desperate resistance, but the 164 SAM HOUSTON building was taken. The prisoners, to the number of twenty -four, were shot by order of General Urrea. Colonel Johnson and three companions, who were in a house in the town, made their escape through the back door, and found their way to Kefugio. Dr. Grant and a party of forty men were out on a horse-raiding expedition toward the Eio Grande. They had previously captured Captain Rodriguez and sixty-six Mexicans with a caballada of horses. The party was released under parole, but broke their parole, and joined the forces under Urrea. After the capture of San Patricio, Urrea set out in pursuit of Grant. He discovered Grant's party on the 2d of March near the Aqua Dulce, returning with a herd of captured horses. He set an ambush, and the Mexicans charged upon Grant's party from two belts of timber through which they were passing. The greater portion of Grant's men were killed in the charge. But he and a man named Reuben R. Brown fled across the prairie. They were pursued, and, after a desperate race of seven miles, Grant was killed by a lance thrust. Brown was lassoed from his horse, and made a prisoner. When Fannin received Houston's dispatch order- ing him to abandon Goliad and fall back upon Vic- toria, he was in command of about 500 men. They consisted almost entirely of volunteers from the United States. Fannin, in his letter to the Council, had complained that there were less than half a dozen Texans in his ranks. They were divided into two THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 165 battalions, known as the "Georgia" and the "La Fayette." The first consisted of "Ward's, Wads- worth's, and Tucker's companies from Alabama and Georgia. The second included the New Orleans "Grays," Captain Pettes; the "Mustangs" of Ken- tucky, Captain Duval ; the Mobile "Grays," Captain McManeman; a company from Louisville and Hunts- ville, Tennessee, Captain Bradford; Captain King's company from Georgia; and the "Red Rovers" of Alabama, Captain Shackleford. There was also a small squadron of cavalry under Captain Horton, and a detachment of artillery under Captain Westover. Colonel Fannin had built an earthwork around the old Mission church, which he called Fort Defiance, and prepared to defend the place. Learning of the advance of Urrea he sent an order to the garrison of San Patricio to join him, but had been disobeyed. He then sent Captain King with twenty-eight men to bring in the families from Refugio. Captain King arrived at Refugio on the 12th of March. Before he could remove the families he was attacked by the ad- vance guard of Urrea's cavalry, and took refuge in the old stone church of the Mission. He dispatched a message to Colonel Fannin for assistance, and Fan- nin sent Lieutenant-Colonel Ward with 120 men. King defended the church until the arrival of Ward on the evening of the 13th, and preparations were made for a retreat the next day. But in the morn- ing Urrea arrived with the main body of his force. On the news of his approach. Captain King was sent 166 SAM HOUSTON out with a party of thirteen men to reconnoitre, and was attacked by a strong force of cavalry. Ward sallied out to his assistance, but was beaten back, and compelled to retreat to the church. Captain King was cut off, and compelled to surrender. He and his men were tied to post oak-trees and shot. Their bodies were left unburied, and their skeletons were afterward found fastened to the trees. Ward and his party were besieged in the Mission church. The building was in ruins, but its walls were strong. Urrea brought up a four-pounder to batter in the door, and attempted to take the church by assault. The attack was repulsed by the deadly fire of the rifles, and in the evening the enemy withdrew to their camp, leaving pickets around the building. The Texans, finding their ammunition nearly exhausted, determined to escape during the night. There was the painful necessity of leaving behind three of the comrades who had been disabled during the fight. They filled the canteens of the wounded with water, and left them to the mercy of the Mexicans, who afterward butchered them. The party broke through the patrol guard, and started to find their way to Victoria, where they expected to meet Fannin. They took a circuitous route through swamps and forests, so as to avoid the pursuit of the enemy's cavalry, and reached Victoria on the 20th. They found Victoria in possession of the enemy, and were attacked by a force of cavalry. They retreated into the swamps of the Guadalupe, where they spent the night. In the THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 167 morning, having not a single round of ammunition left, they surrendered, and were marched back as prisoners to Goliad. Fannin waited six days for the return of Ward and King, sending off courier after courier in a vain at- tempt to obtain news. On the 18th he received definite news that the church was taken, and that Ward had retreated in the direction of Victoria. A scouting party of cavalry was sent out under Captain Horton, who reported that a large force was ad- vancing slowly from the direction of San Antonio. Some skirmishing took place during the day with ad- vance parties of Urrea's cavalry. In the evening a consultation of the officers was held, and it was de- cided to retreat the next day. The heavy pieces of cannon were buried, the fort was dismantled, and the provisions and supplies, which could not be taken with the force, destroyed. The force set out on its march toward Victoria on the morning of the 19th. It numbered about 350 men, and had nine fieldpieces and a howitzer, and a number of wagons drawn by oxen. The morning was extremely thick and foggy, and it took until ten o'clock to get the train across the San Antonio River. The march was begun across an open prairie, skirted with belts of timber, toward the Coleto Creek, about ten miles from the town. Not a Mexican had been seen, except a couple of mounted videttes, and when within about three miles of the sheltering timber of the Coleto, Fannin or- dered a halt at a place where the grass had sprung up 168 SAM HOUSTON green after being burned over, to allow his cattle to graze. It was a fatal error. Fannin was remon- strated witli by some of bis officers, and urged to push on to the timber. But he appears to have held the Mexicans in contempt, and imagined that they would not dare to molest him. After a halt of about an hour and a half, and just as the order had been given to hitch up the teams to resume the march, a dark line of cavalry was seen coming from a skirt of timber to the right of the Texan force, and about two miles distant. They ad- vanced at a gallop, and formed in a mass between the Texans and the Coleto. A large body of infantry followed the cavalry, and took a position in the rear, rapidly advancing lines on both sides. The Texans were caught in a trap. The train had been halted in a depression of the prairie six or seven feet below the general surface, and in an attempt to reach an emi- nence an ammunition wagon broke down. The lines were then drawn in a hollow square, three ranks deep. The wagons were pushed in the centre, and the artillery stationed at the corners. After the Mexican forces had been posted so as to surround the Texans, their cavalry advanced and opened a harm- less fire with their escopetos. Fannin ordered his men to lie down, and not to fire until the enemy came within certain range. When they did so, the Texan rifles emptied the foremost saddles, and drove them back. Captain Horton, who had been sent forward with the cavalry to examine the crossing over the THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 169 Coleto, hearing the firing, galloped back to rejoin the main body. But his party was attacked by the cav- alry, and compelled to take flight through the woods toward the settlements. The enemy appeared at two o'clock, and at three, having made all his disposi- tions, Urrea ordered a general charge upon the lines from the two sides and the rear. They were received with a withering fire from the artillery and the rifles, each Texan being supplied with two or three loaded * guns, and firing with great coolness and precision. The Mexicans came on with great impetuosity, until their front ranks were almost at the bayonet push. The Texan fire, however, was so rapid and deadly that they were compelled to fall back. The infan- try were ordered to lie down within range, and fire from that position, but were picked off by the Texans whenever they raised their heads, and were com- pelled to withdraw. Urrea endeavored to break the Texan lines by a cavalry charge led by himself, but it was broken by a discharge of grapeshot from the howitzer and a volley from the rifles. For the third time the assault was made, the officers pricking on the men from behind with their swords. The in- fantry were driven up close, but the cavalry broke when scarcely within range. The plain was strewn with the bodies of men and horses, and riderless horses charged through the lines of infantry, throw- ing them into still greater confusion, "until their retreat resembled the headlong flight of a herd of buffaloes." The Mexican troops were finally rallied, 170 SAM HOUSTON and drawn up around the Texan lines out of range. Colonel Fannin was severely wounded in the thigh in the early part of the engagement, but continued to command with great coolness and courage. The Texan cannon were useless after a few discharges, from becoming heated and clogged, there being no water with which to sponge them. After the assault had been given up the cavalry were drawn around the lines in open order. They kept up a harmless fire with their muskets and es- co^jetos, to which the Texans responded with more deadly effect. There were about a hundred Campea- chy Indians with the Mexican forces. They crept up around the Texan lines, taking advantage of every hillock and tuft of thick grass, and opened a much more deadly and accurate fire upon the besieged force, killing and wounding a number of the Texans. Four of them crept up to within a hundred yards, and were firing with deadly effect, when Captain Duval, an excellent marksman, undertook to dislodge them. Taking a position behind a gun carriage he fired every time an Indian showed his head, and silenced them in four shots. As he fired his last shot the forefiifger of his right hand was taken off by a rifle ball. After the battle the four Indians were found where they fell, each with a hole in his head. During the fighting one of the wounded was Harry Ripley, a youth of eighteen or nineteen, the son of General Ripley, of Louisiana. He had his thigh broken shortly after the Indians took to the grass. THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 171 He asked Mrs. Cash, a lady of Goliad, who had accompanied the retreat, to help him into her cart. She fixed a prop for him to lean against, and a rest for his rifle. He was seen to bring down four Mex- icans before he received another wound, which broke his right arm. He said to Mrs. Cash, "You may take me down, now, mother. I have done my share. They have paid exactly two for one on account of the balls in me." The Indian firing began at dusk, but as soon as the darkness rendered the flashes of the guns more plainly visible, the Texan rifles were in- stantaneously aimed at the spots, and soon put an end to the discharges. Urrea drew off his troops, and surrounded the Texan lines, his camp fires gleaming redly in the darkness, and his guards keeping up a continual cry of ^'' Sentinela alerte.^'' The night was one of extreme darkness and a heavy fog. Colonel Fannin addressed the men, saying that the only chance of escape was by a retreat during the night to the timber of the Cole to. He said that there was no doubt of their ability to do so, as the enemy was much demoralized by the failure of their attacks, but in the morning it would be too late, as the Mex- icans would undoubtedly receive reinforcements. If the majority of the men were in favor of the attempt it should be made. But this would have necessitated the abandonment of the wounded. There were sixty of the men who had been hit, about forty of whom were disabled. The men refused to abandon their wounded comrades to the mercy of the Mexicans, and 172 SAM HOUSTON . it was decided to remain. The lines were contracted to tlie centre from the original area in which they had fought the battle, and the night was spent by the Texans in throwing up an earthen breastwork, which was still further barricaded by the wagons and the dead bodies of the oxen killed during the afternoon's fight. It was so dark that the surgeons were unable to attend to the wounded, who suffered intensely from thirst. By an oversight the provisions had been left behind, and the night wore away for the besieged without food, or drink, or sleep. During the night three men deserted, and attempted to reach the tim- ber of the Coleto. But the re23orts from the muskets of the Mexican patrols showed that they had been intercepted and killed. In the early morning, before it was fairly light, reinforcements of 300 or 400 men were seen coming to the enemy. They had with them two pieces of artillery, and a hundred pack mules laden with ammunition and supplies. The pieces were soon trained, and the Mexicans opened fire with grape and canister, shattering the wagons and ploughing through the camp. The position of the Texans was untenable. Their cannon were useless, and there were but two or three rounds of ammunition left for the small arms. A consultation of the officers was hastily called, and the question was discussed of a surrender. Fannin opposed it, saying, "We whipped them off yesterday, and can do it again to-day." But the majority were in favor of a surrender, if hon- THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 173 orable and safe terms of capitulation could be ob- tained. Tbe question was submitted to the men by the commanders of the companies, and they agreed that it was impossible to attempt to resist any longer. The white flag was hoisted, and responded to by the enemy. Colonel Fannin and Major Wallace, accom- panied by Captain Durangue, as interpreter, went out from the encampment. They were met halfway between the lines by Colonel Salas, Lieutenant-Colo- nel Holzinger, and Lieutenant Gonzales, the officers sent by Urrea. After a conference the Texan officers returned, and announced that articles had been agreed on by which the besieged should surrender as prison- ers of war, and be treated according to the usages of civilized nations. The wounded were to be taken back to Goliad and properly cared for. Private property was to be respected. Dr. Joseph H. Ber- nard, one of the surgeons, said that he saw what he supposed to be the articles signed by Colonel Fannin, and delivered to a Mexican officer, and believed that each commander had a duplicate. It was rumored about the camp that it was agreed that the men should be sent to New Orleans at the first opportu- nity, under parole not to serve any more during the war in Texas. This was confirmed by the saying of Lieutenant-Colonel Holzinger, the Mexican officer appointed to receive the surrendered arms. As they were delivered up he said, "Well, gentlemen, in ten days liberty and home." The officers' arms were received separately, nailed up in a box, and put on 174 SAM HOUSTON one side, with the assurance that they should be de- livered to them on their release. The loss of the Texans in the battle, called by the Mexicans "Encinal del Perdido," was seven killed and sixty wounded, of whom some died before the removal of the prisoners. The loss of the Mexicans is not known with any accuracy. General Urrea reported only eleven killed and fifty-four wounded, which was a manifest absurdity. Dr. Bernard says that he assisted in attending over a hundred of the wounded Mexicans. The total Mexican loss in killed and wounded can hardly have been less than between 200 and 300. The most reasonable estimate of the number of Urrea' s troops on the morning of the sur- render is that of about 1200. The prisoners were put under a strong guard of cavalry, marched back to Goliad, and confined in the old church. The wounded were brought in carts the next day, and placed in the barracks' hospital. The church, which was of limestone, gloomy and vaulted, was not large enough to comfortably contain the pris- oners. They were huddled together, and given as rations only four ounces of fresh beef, which they were obliged to cook as they could. Hospital dress- ings and surgical instruments were wanting for the wounded, and the surgeons complained to Colonel Fannin, who addressed a note to General Urrea call- ing attention to the terms of the capitulation in re- gard to the treatment of the wounded. Urrea set out in pursuit of Ward's party, and they were brought THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 175 in prisoners a few days afterward. He also dis- patched a force to Copano, who returned with Major Miller and eighty-two volunteers from Nashville. They were captured by Colonel Vara immediately upon landing, and surrendered without resistance. They arrived on the 25th, and were confined in the church, being distinguished from the rest of the pris- oners by pieces of white cloth tied around their arms. Meantime the news had reached Santa Anna at San Antonio of the capture of Fannin and his force. He instantly dispatched an order to Lieutenant -Colo- nel Portilla, the commandant of Goliad, to have the prisoners all shot. The Mexican Congress the pre- vious year had passed a law that all foreigners mak- ing an armed invasion of the country should be dealt with as pirates. Colonel Portilla received the order for the execu- tion of the prisoners on Saturday evening, the 26th. On that same evening Colonel Fannin and Lieuten- ant-Colonel Holzinger returned from Copano, where they had been to see if a vessel could be obtained to take the men to New Orleans ; but they could find none in the harbor. Colonel Fannin was very cheer- ful, and spoke of his wife and child, whom he ex- pected soon to see. The prisoners were encouraged by the apparent purpose of the Mexicans to send them home, and spent the evening in singing, one of the men who had retained his flute playing "Home, Sweet Home." Portilla was much agitated and dis- 176 SAM HOUSTON tressed by the receipt of tlie order from Santa Anna, and the news soon spread among the Mexican officers, causing horror and indignation among the more humane. Urrea was absent in the direction of Vic- toria, and the news did not reach him until after the execution had taken place. In the early morning of Palm Sunday the prison- ers were awakened and formed into three divisions. One was led out on the road to San Antonio, one on the road to San Patricio, and the third on the road to Copano. One party was informed by the Mexican officers that it was marching to be sent home, another that it was being taken out to kill beeves, and the third that the church was required for Santa Anna's advancing troops. As they passed through the town the Mexican women, gazing at them from the doors of the houses, exclaimed, ''^ Pohrecitos ! ^^ (poor fel- lows) but the exclamation aroused no suspicion. They were marched in double file with Mexican sol- diers on each side of them, and cavalry squads in the rear. When about half a mile from the town, in dif- ferent directions, the divisions were halted, and one line of the Mexican soldiers passed around to the other side. There was hardly time for the exclama- tion, "Boys, they are going to kill us!" when the order was given to fire, and the volleys were poured in at close range. The lines of prisoners fell in heaps. Some few, who were unwounded, struggled to their feet, and dashed toward the timber out upon the prairie, pursued by the cavalry, and shot at as THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 111 they ran. The guards stabbed the wounded to death with their bayonets. Many of the fugitives were shot down, or stabbed with lances, and some of those who reached a temporary shelter in the river timber were afterward intercepted and killed by the cavalry pickets. Twenty-seven finally escaped by reaching the woods and swimming the river. They made their way by long and painful journeys over the prairies, hiding by day and moving on by night, and, after incredible sufferings and perilous adventures, reached places of safety in the settlements, or joined the Texan army in its advance after the battle of San Jacinto. Before daylight in the morning, Dr. Bernard and Dr. Shackleford, who was a surgeon as well as cap- tain of the "Eed Eovers," were aroused by Colonel Garay with a serious and grave countenance, and directed to go to his headquarters, which were in a peach orchard, two or three hundred yards from the church. They found that Captain Miller's company had also been ordered there, and followed them on, supposing that their services were required for some wounded. Drs. Bernard and Shackleford were called inside of Colonel Garay 's tent, where they found two men lying completely covered up with blankets, so that they could not see their faces, and whom they supposed to be the patients they were called to attend. While waiting a lad named Martinez came in, and addressed them in English. They chatted for some time, but, becoming impatient at the non-appearance 178 SAM HOUSTON of Colonel Garay, tliey were about to return to tlie church, when Martinez told them that the directions for them to remain were positive. Just then they were startled by a volley of firearms from the direc- tion of the fort, and Dr. Shackleford exclaimed, "What's that?" Martinez replied that it was the soldiers discharging their guns for the purpose of cleaning them. But yells and cries were heard, which were recognized as being the voices of Ameri- cans, and through the openings in the trees some pris- oners were seen running at their utmost speed with Mexican soldiers in pursuit of them. Colonel Garay then entered the tent with a distressed countenance, and said, "Keep still, gentlemen, you are perfectly safe. This is not from my orders, nor do I execute them." He then told them of the orders which had been received from Santa Anna to shoot the prison- ers, and that he had taken upon himself the responsi- bility of saving the surgeons, and the others, who had been taken without arms in their hands. The men under the blankets were two who had been employed by Colonel Garay as carpenters, and whom he had resolved to save. In the course of five or ten min- utes as many as Rve distinct volleys were heard in the tent, and occasional shots followed for more than an hour. Dr. Shackleford had recruited the "Eed Rovers " from among his friends and neighbors in Alabama, and his eldest son and two of his nephews were in their ranks. Senora Alvarez, the wife of one of Urrea's officers, having been informed of the THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 179 approacliing massacre, withdrew a few of the Texan officers during the night, and concealed them in her house until the slaughter was over. They joined Miller's men, and were released after the retreat of the Mexicans from San Jacinto. Fannin and Ward were not shot with the rest of the prisoners, but taken out later. Fannin received the order for his execution with a calm countenance. He handed his watch to the officer commanding the firing party, with the request that it be sent to his family. He asked that he be not shot in the head, and that he should be decently buried. It is said that he was shot in the head, and at any rate his body was thrown in the heap with the rest of the prisoners. Ward refused to kneel at the word of command, and was shot while denouncing the Mexi- cans as cold-blooded murderers. Fannin was a na- tive of Georgia, and had come to Texas in 1834. At the outbreak of the revolution he had enlisted a company called the "Brazos Volunteers," and joined Austin's army. He had sided with the Council in the difficulties between it and Governor Smith, but the charge that he refused to obey the orders of Gen- eral Houston to retreat from Goliad is an error. But his delays in executing them promptly were as fatal as disobedience. Ward was a native of Georgia, where he had recruited a company at the call of Texas for volunteers, and reached the country a few months previous to his death. The wounded were butchered in their beds in the hospital. Toward 180 SAM HOUSTON evening the bodies were piled in heaps, and some brushwood was piled over them and set on fire. It was not sufficient to consume them, and the next day the vultures were seen feeding on the scorched and mangled remains. When the Texan army advanced after the battle of San Jacinto to follow General Filisola's retiring march, it halted at Goliad, and the bones of the victims of the massacre were gathered and placed in a grave, at which General Eusk deliv- ered a feeling address. The number of men killed in the massacre was 820. Twenty had been pre- viously killed with Captain King, or butchered in the church at Refugio. The massacre was as bun- glingly executed as it was cruel, and included all the horrors of cowardly treachery and clumsy butchery more befitting a band of savages than a discij)lined military. The troops departed for the east the next day, leaving seventy or eighty men to guard the hos- pital. Miller's men were allowed at large on their parole. Drs. Bernard and Shackleford were taken to San Antonio to attend the Mexican soldiers wounded in the assault on the Alamo. Some controversy arose as to whether Fannin had surrendered under an agreement of capitulation or at discretion. The copy of the agreement, if there was one, was never found, and General Urrea declared that the surrender was without conditions. The pre- sumptive evidence, however, is strongly in favor of a capitulation. Fannin and his men were well aware of the cruelty of the Mexicans, and would have pre- THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 181 f erred to have died fighting rather than to have trusted to their mercy, without some definite guarantee that they would be treated as prisoners of war. All the circumstances go to show that they laid down their arms upon such a pledge. There is nothing in the character of Urrea to vindicate him from the charge of the falsehood and treachery too common among his military associates, and his previous butchery of Cap- tain King's men and the garrison at San Patricio showed that he was ready to carry out the orders for treating the invaders from the United States as pirates. There is a further presumption that there was a capitulation in the fact that he sent Fannin and his men to Goliad, instead of executing them on the spot. There is reason to believe that Urrea informed Santa Anna that Fannin had surrendered upon terms, although the latter denied it when a prisoner at San Jacinto, for the order to shoot the prisoners was sent not to Urrea, but to Colonel Portilla. The odium of the butchery rests entirely upon Santa Anna. He was responsible for the decree of the Mexican Congress that invaders should be treated as outlaws, for the Congress was entirely his creature. He was undoubtedly deeply enraged at the slaughter of his troops by the defenders of the Alamo, and per- haps counted on striking terror into the Texan colo- nists by an example of merciless severity. If so, he was mistaken in the character of the men he had to deal with. They were simply aroused to a pitch of fury by his cruelty, and the cry of "Kemember La 182 SAM HOUSTON BaMa! " nerved the arms tliat struck down liis fleeing soldiers at San Jacinto. Like all suck deeds, it was a blunder as well as a crime. Wken lie received tke information that Miller and his company had been spared, he directed the preparation of an order for their execution, but Captain Savageiro, the bearer of the dispatch from Goliad, manfully remonstrated. He was reprimanded by Santa Anna, but the order was withdrawn to permit an investigation into the circumstances of the capture. To the credit of most of the Mexican officers, they were shocked at Santa Anna's barbarity, and some of them had the courage to express their shame and indignation. Santa Anna was confirmed in his belief that the war was practically over by the capture of the gar- rison of Goliad. He divided his troops into three columns to complete the work of occupying the coun- try. The first, under General Gaona, was to proceed by a northerly route to Nacogdoches. The second, under General Sesma, was to advance upon San Felipe, and thence by way of Harrisburg to the coast at Anahuac. The third, under General Urrea, was to sweep the country between Goliad and the mouth of the Brazos, and drive out all the colonists on the southern border. The orders to these com- manders were to shoot all prisoners. He ordered a brigade of cavalry, with a portion of the artillery and military stores, to be ready to return to San Luis Potosi, and prepared to set out for Tampico himself by sea from Copano or Matagorda. But upon the THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 183 remonstrances of General Filisola and Colonel Al- monte, that the Texans were by no means yet sub- dued, and tbe receipt of a dispatch from General Sesma that a force of 1200 had gathered to dispute the passage of the Colorado, Santa Anna changed his mind, countermanded the order for the withdrawal of the troops to Mexico, and set out with General Fili- sola, under an escort of cavalry, to join the column under General Sesma. CHAPTER XI SAN JACINTO Houston remained at Burnham's Crossing for two days, until all the fugitives and their families had been passed over, and then crossed to the east bank of the Colorado. He moved down to a place known as Beason's Crossing, where he remained until the 26th. The artillery which he expected did not ar- rive, and he complained that his orders for its trans- mission from the mouth of the Brazos had been coun- termanded by the government. The news of the fall of the Alamo and the retreat of Houston, combined with the withdrawal of the government to Harrisburg, created a thorough panic among the settlers. It was one of those alarms which are liable to seize any com- munity on the receipt of sudden and terrifying news. The deserters from the army spread the panic from house to house with wild exaggerations as to the near- ness and magnitude of the Mexican forces. Families packed their goods into wagons and started in frantic haste toward the eastern settlements, and men who should have joined the army took the backward in- stead of the forward trails. The flight and panic which spread through Texas were afterward known as "The Runaway Scrape." Nevertheless, the colo- SAN JACINTO 185 nists rallied to some extent to join Houston's army. He declared, subsequently, that at no time had he over 700 men; but well-informed authorities assert that before he fell back from the Colorado his forces numbered between 1200 and 1400. His dispatches to the government, while urgently calling upon the people to rally to his standard, indicated a purpose to fight on the line of the Colorado. He said, "Fifteen hundred men can defeat all the troops Santa Anna can send to the Colorado. Let all the men east of the Trinity rush to us. Let all the disposable forces of Texas fly to arms. Rouse the Redlanders to bat- tle." He reported his men as in fine spirits, under good discipline, and eager to engage the enemy. On the 19th, Generals Sesma and WoU arrived with a Mexican force, estimated at between 500 and 600, and took a position on the west bank of the Colorado about two miles above Beason's Crossing, under or- ders from Santa Anna not to cross the river unless the enemy had retired. Houston sent up a small force to dispute Sesma 's crossing, and some skirmish- ing took place, but the Mexicans made no attempt to cross. He sent out spies to ascertain the number of Sesma' s forces, and, according to his dispatches, it was correctly reported to him. He could have fallen upon and destroyed Sesma' s force, but he waited for his artillery and for news of the movements of the troops under Fannin. On the 25th, a fugitive named Peter Kerr arrived in camp with the news of the capture of Fannin's 186 SAM HOUSTON force. Houston, afraid of the effect of the news upon the spirits of his men, fell into one of his feigned rages, declared Kerr to be a traitor and a spy, and ordered him to be put under guard for exe- cution the next morning. Of course he did not carry out his threat. He examined him privately at night, and was satisfied of the truth of the report. The destruction of Fannin's force left Urrea free either to form a junction with Sesma or to pass to Houston's rear. It is probable that Houston came to the con- clusion, after the news of the defeat of Fannin, that an attack upon Sesma would lead to the concentration of the entire Mexican army upon the Colorado, which he would be unable to meet with a chance of success, while a defeat and the destruction of its only army would be fatal to the cause of Texas. It would be wiser to induce the enemy to divide their forces, and scatter through the country, so that they could be struck in detail. He made up his mind to fall back to the Brazos. He kept his own counsel, and took no one into his confidence except Colonel Hockley, his chief -of -staff. He began his retreat on the even- ing of the 26th, and fell back about five miles on his first march. The movement caused great dissatisfac- tion and some insubordination among the members of his little army. They wanted to fight, and, like all » volunteers, could see nothing in a retreat but evi- 1 deuce of timidity on the part of the commander. It ^ is the greatest test of the power and personal influ- ence of a commander to keep a force of undisciplined SAN JACINTO 187 soldiery together and in heart on a retrograde move- ment. Furloughs were given to some to remove their families from the country between the Colorado and the Brazos, and others departed without leave, so that the force was reduced to 750 men. Fiery and insubordinate spirits advocated revolt, and even the deposition of the commander. But Houston was in- defatigable, and never was his power over men more thoroughly demonstrated than in keeping the confi- dence and control of the lawless, passionate, and undisciplined elements that composed his retreating force. He was the first in the morning to rally the troops and start the wagons, and by jest and good humor, by objurgation and appeal, pushed the march over every obstacle, and kept the men in hearty spir- its. He put his own shoulder to the bemired wheels, and his persuasive presence was everywhere up and down the line. It was a very trying time for Houston. He wrote to Rusk, the Secretary of War, after reaching the Brazos : "I hope I can keep them together. I have thus far succeeded beyond my hopes. I will do the best I can, but be assured the fame of Jackson could never compensate me for my anxiety and mental pain." The weather was very depressing. Continued storms and heavy rains beat down upon the unsheltered troops, and tried even their seasoned hardihood. The streams were swollen beyond their banks, and the prairie, which at that season of the year was usually an elastic carpet of green grass and blooming flowers, was a dismal and 188 SAM HOUSTON miry morass in which the wagon wheels sank up to their hubs. But the line struggled on, sweeping up the families along its line of march, and sending out scouting parties to bring away the inhabitants of the outlying cabins. There were many painful scenes of distress and suffering. While the army was crossing the Colorado, two women were seen sitting on a log near the bank. The husband of one of them had been killed at the Alamo, and she was utterly aban- doned and destitute. Houston gave her fifty dollars out of the two hundred which was all that he had for any purpose. It is an evidence of the vigorous char- acter of the pioneer settlers, that she afterward wrote him that she had invested the money in cattle, and had made herself comfortable and independent. The army was increased during its march by three com- panies of 130 men, who had been brought from the mouth of the Brazos by Major John Forbes. It reached San Felipe, on the west bank of the Brazos, on the 28th. From this point Houston determined to march up the river. It is difficult to understand why he took this course, unless, as he afterward said, he intended to fall on the enemy by surprise, when they arrived at San Felipe. The movement caused more insubor- dination in the ranks of the army. Captain Moreley Baker, with his company of 120 men, insisted on re- maining to defend the crossing at San Felipe, and Captain Wylie Martin, with his, in going below to guard the ferry at Fort Bend. These withdrawals SAN JACINTO 189 left Houston with only 520 men. He marclied up the river to Mill Creek, and then to Groce's Ferry, where he found the steamer Yellowstone, partially loaded with cotton. The steamer was seized by his order, and held to take the troops across the river if necessary. The army was encamped in the Brazos bottom. Heavy rains continued to fall, and the en- campment was entirely surrounded by water. The valley of the Brazos became a running torrent, and any scheme to attack the Mexicans on their arrival at San Felipe was out of the question. The army re- mained at its camp, shelterless and with no food ex- cept the beeves they could kill, until April 12. In the mean time. President Burnett had issued a pro- clamation calling upon the people to rally to the army, and endeavored to allay the panic. But a universal alarm had seized upon the peoj^le. The fugitives from the region west of the Brazos, stream- ing across the country, spread the contagion of fear from settlement to settlement clear to the border of Louisiana. Samuel P. Carson, the Secretary of State, wrote from Liberty to President Burnett: "Never, until I reached the Trinity, have I de- sponded, I will not say despaired. If Houston has retreated or been whipped, nothing can save the peo- ple from themselves; their own conduct has brought this calamity upon them." On the 29th, Captain Baker burned the town of San Felipe on the mistaken supposition that the enemy were approaching, but it proved to be only a herd of cattle. On April 2, 190 SAM HOUSTON Vice-President Zavala joined Houston, and a com- pany of eighty men from Eastern Texas also arrived. On the 4th, Secretary of War Kusk came to give his counsel and assistance. General Sesma, having been reinforced by the arrival of the troops under General Tolsa so that his force amounted to 1400 men, crossed the swollen Colorado with great difficulty on rafts. Santa Anna did what it was expected he would, and ordered a concentration of his columns. Generals Urrea and Gaona were ordered to move upon San Eelipe to form a junction with Sesma. Santa Anna himself hastened forward to take command of Sesma' s col- umn. He arrived with escort at San Felipe April 7. Finding that Houston had vanished in the woods, he countermanded Urrea' s advance, and directed him to proceed to Matagorda. In the mean time. General Gaona had lost his way in marching from Bastrop, and did not arrive at San Felipe until April 17. Santa Anna evidently believed that the Texan army had fallen back out of his path, and that all he need to do to finish the war was to push on and capture the members of the government at Harrisburg. He was probably also informed of the flight and panic of the people. Baker's small force remained to dispute the passage at San Felipe, and after some exchange of shots across the river, Santa Anna moved with a portion of his force down to Fort Bend. All the boats had been removed from the west bank of the river, but Colonel Almonte, hailing in English a SAN JACINTO 191 negro ferryman on tlie east bank, persuaded him to bring over his boat, which was seized. Captain Martin's force was kept occupied at the upper ferry by a demonstration while the main body of the Mexi- cans crossed at the lower. The crossing was effected on the 13th, and on the afternoon of the 14th, Santa Anna pushed on with a column of about 700 men and one cannon, with the hope of surprising Harris- burg. He left Sesma with the remainder of the troops and the baggage, and announced that he would be back in three days. He forced his troops through the heavy timber of the Brazos bottom and across the miry prairie with impatient energy, and arrived in the vicinity of Harrisburg at eleven o'clock on the night of the 15th. He entered the town on foot with sixteen men, and found it deserted by all except three printers in the "Telegraph" office. He made them prisoners, and learned that the members of the gov- ernment had left that morning for Galveston Island. He halted until the afternoon of the next day for the stragglers to come in, and, having set fire to the buildings of Harrisburg, pushed on for New Wash- ington on the border of the bay, where he hoped to catch the fugitive members of the government be- fore they could make their escape to Galveston. An advance guard of cavalry under Colonel Almonte nearly captured President Burnett, who had delayed to remove his family from his residence in the neigh- borhood. He had just pushed off in a small sailing vessel as they arrived, and stood exposed to their fire 192 SAM HOUSTON for some minutes, but fortunately escaped unharmed. Santa Anna arrived at New Washington on the 18th, and sent orders to General Cos, who was with Ses- ma's force, to join him by forced marches with 500 men. He intended to proceed to Anahuac, and from thence to Galveston. The news that the Mexican advance had reached the Brazos was communicated to Houston by his scouts. On April 7, he issued an order to the army saying that "the moment we have waited for with anxiety and interest is fast aj)proaching. The vic- tims of the Alamo and the masses of those who were murdered at Goliad call for cool, deliberate ven- geance. The army will be in condition for action at a moment's warning." On the 11th, two six-pounder guns, named "The Twin Sisters," which had been sent by the citizens of Cincinnati, arrived from Har- risburg. There was no ordnance with them, and horseshoes and old pieces of iron were cut up and tied in bags for canister. On the 12th, Houston be- came convinced that Santa Anna had crossed the Brazos, and determined to follow him. The army was taken over on the Yellowstone, and encamped at Groce's plantation, where it was joined by Baker's and Martin's companies. Baker and Martin were in a refractory temper. They asked if there was to be any fighting, and were informed by Houston that there would be. The companies at first refused to fall into line, and Martin was so insubordinate that he was sent to the Trinity to keep the Indians quiet, SAN JACINTO 193 if tliey should prove turbulent, and protect the fam- ilies of the settlers. On the 14th, the army com- menced its march to the south. The roads were in a terrible condition, the streams swollen and the prai- ries quagmired. Houston pulled off his coat, and put his shoulder to the wheels of the cannon. On the 18th, the army reached Buffalo Bayou, opposite the ruins of Harrisburg. Deaf Smith and Karnes, who had been sent out as spies, returned with a pris- oner bearing a buckskin bag full of dispatches to Santa Anna from General Filisola and the City of Mexico. There was no longer any doubt that the Mexican commander-in-chief was with the force be- low them. Houston and Rusk had a brief confer- ence. "We need not talk,'' said Houston. "You think we ought to fight, and I think so, too." Up to that time Houston had kept his own counsel, and a good many of the officers and men believed that they would take the Liberty road toward the Trinity. He then called them together and addressed them. His brief words were: "The army will cross, and we will meet the enemy. Some of us may be killed, and must be killed. But, soldiers, remember the Alamo, the Alamo, the Alamo!" Said Major Somerville, "After that speech there will be damned few prison- ers taken, that I know." Colonel Rusk began an eloquent speech, but stopped in the middle of it, say- ing, "I have done," as if he realized that it was use- less to inspire men for a battle which they were eagerly longing for. The dogged courage which had 194 SAM HOUSTON held up the retreat now flamed into the fierce energy and lust for victory and vengeance. Buffalo Bayou is a narrow but deep stream, and was then running bank-full. Eafts were built of timber and rails, and were pulled across on a rope stretched from tree to tree, the horses swimming. Houston stood on the farther bank, and Eusk on the other, until the men were across. It was evening when the crossing was finished, but the troops pushed on, until they became so utterly exhausted that they were stumbling against each other in the ranks and falling down. They were given a rest for two hours, and again resumed their march, which they kept up until morning. At sun- rise on the morning of the 20th they were halted. They had shot ^me wandering cattle, and were cook- ing their breaii: .iSt, when an alarm was given that the scouts had encountered the enemy. Leaving their half -cooked meat on the sticks, they hastened forward to Lynch' s Ferry at the junction of Buffalo Bayou and the San Jacinto River, where it was expected that Santa Anna would cross on his way to Anahuac. No enemy was in sight, but they found a flat-boat loaded with provisions for Santa Anna's army, which they seized. They then fell back about half a mile to a grove on the banks of the bayou. The grove was of heavy live oaks, hung with the weeping Spanish moss, and free from underbrush. Before it was a stretch of gently rolling prairie, some two miles in extent. Upon the farther edge of the prairie were the marshes of the. San Jacinto River, which swept SAN JACINTO 195 around it to the southward, and whose timber bounded the horizon. In front were two small islands, or "motts" of timber, a few hundred yards out on the prairie. In the rear were the turbid wa- ters of the bayou, there broadened to a stream of considerable width. The two cannon were planted on the edge of the grove, and the men encamped within its shelter. The grass on the prairie had al- ready grown up tall, and the vegetation was in the full leaf and luxuriance of the early Texas summer. On the morning of the 20th, Santa Anna had burnt the warehouses of New Washington and a ves- sel lying at the wharf, and his troops were in line for the march to Lynch 's Ferry, when Captain Barragan, who had been sent out on a scout t previous day, dashed up at full speed, and annou. jed that Hous- ton's army was close at hand, and had captured and dispatched some of the stragglers. At the entrance to New Washington there was a lane some half mile in length, which was filled with the baggage mules and the troops who had them in charge. When Santa Anna, who had not left the town, received the report of Captain Barragan, he dashed off at full speed through the lane, thrusting aside and knocking down the men and animals, and shouting at the top of his voice, "The enemy are coming! The enemy are com- ing! " This mad conduct excited and frightened the troops, and for some time there was an absolute con- fusion, the troops being on the verge of scattering in flight. Finally, they were formed in line on the 196 SAM HOUSTON prairie beyond tlie lane, and a scouting party was sent out. No enemy was in sight, and the troops were formed into ranks and advanced. About two o'clock in the afternoon Houston's pickets were dis- covered on the edge of the grove, and Santa Anna again formed his troops in line of battle. He brought up his cannon, and fired a few shots, which did no execution, except in wounding Colonel J. C. Neill, in command of the Texan artillery. The Mexican skir- mish line of infantry advanced, but was received with a fire which drove it back in haste amid the wild shouts of the Texans. After some harmless ex- changes by the artillery, Santa Anna drew off, and established his camp with very poor judgment. Its front was open to the prairie without defense, and in its rear were the deep marshes of the San Jacinto River. In fact, Santa Anna appears to have lost control of his faculties since the surprise of the morning and the realization that he had cut himself off from the main body of his troops. His officers perceived and spoke of the weak situation of the camp, but no one dared to remonstrate with him in his haK-frantic state of mind. Late in the afternoon a slight skirmish took place. Colonel Sherman ob- tained permission to take out the Texan cavalry to reconnoitre, and endeavored to bring on a general engagement. He encountered the Mexican cavalry, and some shots were exchanged by which two Texans were wounded, one of them mortally. Some infantry was sent to his assistance, but Houston refused to SAN JACINTO 197 advance for a battle, and the Texans retired. In this skirmish Mirabeau B. Lamar, afterward Presi- dent of the Republic, distinguished himself. He had joined the army at Grroce's, having walked nearly all the way from Yelasco, and was serving as a private in the cavalry. During the skirmish a young man named Walter P. Lane was cut off and was in dan- ger of being captured or killed. Lamar dashed for- ward, killed one Mexican, upset another, and dis- armed a third, and brought Lane in safe. For this dashing feat he was given the command of the cav- alry the next day. The Texans rested under double guard during the night, but there was nothing to break the silence except the voices of the night birds. The morning sun of April 21 rose bright and cloudless. Santa Anna fortified his camp to a slight extent by piling up a barricade of boxes, baggage, and pack-saddles in front of his lines with an opening in the centre for his cannon. Boughs of trees were also cut and piled up as a sort of abatis. The Tex- ans cooked their breakfast and waited for the orders of their commander. Houston was awake during the night, but slept for two hours in the morning with his head on a coil of rope used in dragging the can- non. At nine o'clock a body of Mexican troops were seen advancing over the prairie from the north. It was General Cos with a force of 500 men from Ses- ma's division. He had hastened by forced marches on the receipt of Santa Anna's orders to join him, and his men arrived so utterly exhausted that they 198 SAM HOUSTON threw themselves down as soon as they had stacked arms. Houston said that they were not new men, but merely a body of the old ones, which had been marched around behind a rise in the prairie to give the impression of a reinforcement. But it is doubt- ful if his explanation deceived anybody, or if the Texans were at all discouraged by the addition to the enemy's forces. In the morning Houston had directed Major Forbes to provide a couple of axes, and summoned Deaf Smith. He ordered him to select a trustworthy companion, and hold himself in readiness for special service, and not to leave the camp. Smith selected Denmore Reeves, a fellow- scout, as his companion, and waited for his orders. Houston made no sign of opening the engagements, and the men became impatient. About noon some of the officers waited upon him, and asked for a coun- cil of war. Houston consented. The council con- sisted of Colonels Burleson and Sherman, Lieuten- ant-Colonels Millard and Bennett, Major Wells, Secretary Rusk, and the commander-in-chief. The question was put, " Shall we attack the enemy in his position, or await his attack in ours?" The two junior officers were in favor of attack. The four seniors and Secretary Rusk were in favor of awaiting the attack of the enemy. Rusk said that "to attack veteran troops with raw militia was a thing unheard of; to charge upon the enemy without bayonets in the open prairie had never been known ; our position is strong; in it we can whip all Mexico." Houston SAN JACINTO 199 expressed no opinion, and dismissed the council. After the council had been dismissed Houston called Deaf Smith and his companion, and ordered them to take the axes and cut down Vince's bridge. The bridge was over Vince's Bayou, a stream running into Buffalo Bayou to the north about eight miles above the camp, and over which both armies had passed on their way into the cul de sac. Its destruc- tion cut off the only means of retreat for either army, and made the coming battle a struggle for life or death. As Smith and his companion started with the axes over their saddle-bows, Houston told them that they must hurry if they would be back in time for what was about to take place. Smith smiled and said, "This looks a good deal like a fight, general." At haK past three o'clock Houston gave orders for the troops to be formed in line of battle. The only music which the Texan army had was a solitary drum and fife. As the troops were forming they struck up the air, "Will you come to the bower? " The lines were drawn up behind the mott of timber in front of the camp. Colonel Burleson occupied the centre with the first regiment. Colonel Sherman, with the second regiment, formed the left wing. The two pieces of artillery, under the command of Colonel Hockley, were stationed on the right of the first regiment, supported by four companies of infantry under command of Lieutenant-Colonel Millard. The squadron of cavalry, sixty-eight in number, under command of Colonel Lamar, completed the line on 200 SAM HOUSTON the right. Houston was with the centre, Rusk with the left. At four o'clock the order of "Forward! " was given. The afternoon sun was shining full in their eyes, lighting up the strong, eager faces and the stained and ragged garments, as the line moved forward with trailed arms. As they approached the enemy's camp their pace was quickened to a run, Houston dashing up and down behind the lines, wav- ing his old white hat, and shouting, "G — d d — n you, hold your fire!" When within about sixty yards of the barricade Deaf Smith dashed up on his horse, flecked with foam, and yelled, "You must fight for your lives! Vince's bridge has been cut down!" Where the guns were within point-blank distance they were wheeled and fired, smashing into the barricade. The Texans halted at close range, and delivered a volley, and then dashed forward with terrific yells, "Remember the Alamo! Remember La Baliia!" The Mexicans were taken entirly by surj)rise. Santa Anna had given up all idea of ex- pecting a battle that day, and was enjoying his siesta in his tent. Many of the other officers and men were also stretched out in a doze. Some of the men were cooking, and others were in the woods cutting boughs for shelter. The lines were composed of musket stacks. The cavalrymen were riding bare- back to and from water. When the Texan line was seen approaching there was the greatest alarm and confusion. General Castrillon shouted on one side, and Colonel Almonte was giving orders on the other. SAN JACINTO 201 Some of the officers cried out to the men to fire, and others to lie down and avoid the shots. Santa Anna ran out of his tent and yelled to the men to lie down. iGeneral Castrillon endeavored to rally some men to work the gun, but the cannoneer was shot down, and the men ran back, as they saw the charging line. General Castrillon himself soon fell dead, struck with a rifle ball. The Mexicans had barely time to seize their muskets, and give a scattering volley at the charging line, when it burst over the feeble barricade upon the frightened and disorganized crowd. The Texans clubbed their rifles or drew their bowie knives, and plunged into the mass. Some of the Mexicans tried to use their bayonets, but the brawny arms of the Texans struck them down, and, after a quarter of an hour of confused and desperate struggle, the Mexican army was in full flight over the prairie or running into the morass, pursued by the shouting and yelling Texans. Santa Anna, after running frantically about, wringing his hands, sprang upon a splendid black stallion furnished by one of his aids, and led the flight toward Yince's bridge. The Mexi- cans who fled into the morass were bogged in the quagmire, and shot down as they struggled. Some of them were intercepted by a deep and muddy bayou at the rear of the right of their camp, and were killed on its banks or shot as they endeavored to flounder across. Those who fled over the prairie were pur- sued by fleeter footsteps than their own, and struck down or shot. The cavalry pursued those who fled 202 SAM HOUSTON on horseback toward Vince's bridge. They found it destroyed, and only a few of them were able to cross the steep banks of the bayou. The Mexican soldiers, appalled by the fury of slaughter, threw up their hands and cried, "Me no Alamo! Me no Alamo!" The Texans executed a full vengeance. Six hundred and thirty were killed and 208 wounded out of a total of between 1300 and 1400 Mexicans. Colonel Al- monte managed to rally 300 or 400 men beyond the camp, and make a formal surrender. The rest threw down their arms as they ran, and were herded into the Texan camp after the slaughter. Houston re- ceived a ball in his ankle which shattered the bone, and his horse was shot in several places as he followed the charging line on the breastworks. He remained upon the field, however, until the Mexican army was in full flight. While riding over the prairie endeav- oring to stop the slaughter, his horse sank under him, and he fell to the ground. He turned over the com- mand to Colonel Rusk, and was taken back to the camp. Deaf Smith charged on horseback ahead of the infantry. When close to the breastwork his horse stumbled and threw him over his head. Smith lost his sword in his fall, and drew his pistol to kill a Mexican soldier who was advancing to stab him with his bayonet, but the cap snapped. He threw his pistol at the Mexican, and staggered him back. He then wrenched the soldier's musket from his hands and defended himself until the infantry came up. When darkness fell the prisoners were put under SAN JACINTO 203 guard. Bright fires were lit, and the Texans gave themselves up to wild rejoicings. They yelled and pranced around the prisoners, shouting to every offi- cer, "Santa Anna? Santa Anna?"" until some of them pulled off their shoulder-straps to escape the annoyance. There was a grand illumination of can- dles, which the Texans had procured from the Mexi- can baggage, and carried about in their hands. The dark arches of the grove echoed with the wild tumult until nearly morning. The prisoners, however, were not maltreated, but only made subject to a fire of chaff in a language which they did not understand. It was merely the effervescence of vigorous animal spirits working off the intoxication of victory. The number of Texans in the battle which achieved their independence was 743. Of these only six were killed in the engagement, and twenty-five were wounded, of whom two afterward died. The losses were almost all in the scattering volley fired against them before they crossed the breastwork. After that the Mexicans were helplessly slaughtered. The Mexican loss was 630 killed, 208 wounded, and 730 prisoners. As an illustration of the fury of the Texan blows, many skulls have been picked up on the battle-field which showed where they had been struck in the back with bowie knives and sprayed, as a pane of glass is sprayed by a blow. A large quan- tity of arms, baggage, and camp equipage fell into the hands of the victors, including 900 English mus- kets, 300 sabres, and 200 pistols. There were 300 204 SAM HOUSTON mules and 100 horses, clothing, tents, and camp equipage. Among the spoils was the sum of 112,000 in silver. The soldiers voted that ^12000 of this should be devoted to the support of the navy. The rest was distributed among them, making 17.50 each, which was all the money they received during the campaign. The next day parties were sent out to bury the dead Mexican soldiers, in whose bodies decomposition set in so rapidly as to cause the more superstitious among the prisoners to attribute their disaster to a supernatural visitation. The plunder of the Mexican camp was brought in, and the Texans amused them- selves by decorating the mules with officers' sashes and ribbons, and in all kinds of rude horse-play. In the mean time, parties were scouring the country in search of Santa Anna and other fugitives. Houston had prophesied that Santa Anna would be found making his retreat on all fours, and in the dress of a common soldier. About two o'clock a little man was brought in behind a soldier on horseback. His rest- less eyes and pallid countenance indicated that he was suffering from great fear. He was dressed in linen trousers, a blue cotton jacket, a cap, and red worsted slippers. The Mexican soldiers, on seeing him, exclaimed, "El Presidente! El General Santa Anna!" When Santa Anna, in his flight from the battle- field, came to Yince's Bayou and found the bridge de- stroyed, he plunged in with his horse. The horse was SAN JACINTO 205 mired, and was unable to extricate himself. Santa Anna left him, swam across the stream, climbed the opposite bank, and continued his flight on foot. He found some old clothes in an abandoned house, and exchanged his gilded uniform for them. The next day he was discovered by James T. Sylvester and a party of four, who were scouting the country. He was standing on the edge of a ravine, and when he saw the party riding toward him he dropped on all fours in the grass, and was with difficulty compelled to rise. He claimed to be a private soldier, but his fine linen and jeweled studs betrayed him to be an officer. He then said that he was an aid-de-camp to Santa Anna. As the party started to return to camp he complained that his feet were so sore that he could not walk, and he was taken behind one of the men on horseback. Santa Anna was brought into the presence of Houston, who was lying on his pallet in a doze, hav- ing been kept awake during the night from the pain of his wound. Houston was not much more distin- guished in dress than his captive. His dandyism had given way to the exigencies of the campaign, and he wore an old black coat, a black velvet vest, a pair of snuff-colored pantaloons, and dilapidated boots. His only badge of authority during the cam- paign was a sword with a plated scabbard, which he tied to his belt with buckskin thongs. Santa Anna stepped forward, and said, with an impressive bow, "I am General Antonio Lopez de Santa Anna, Pres- 206 SAM HOUSTON ident of the Mexican Kepublic, and I claim to be a prisoner of war at your disposal." Houston waved his hand for him to be seated on an ammunition box, and Colonel Almonte was sent for to act as inter- preter. While waiting his arrival, Santa Anna pressed his hands to his sides as if in pain or fear, and his restless black eyes glanced around the camp. When Almonte came up Santa Anna complained of pain, and asked for a piece of opium. A piece of about five grains was given him, and he regained something of his composure. His first words were, "That man may consider himself born to no common destiny who has conquered the Napoleon of the West. It now remains for him to be generous to the van- quished." Houston replied, "You should have re- membered that at the Alamo." Santa Anna en- deavored to excuse himself for the slaughter of the garrison of the Alamo, on the ground that he was acting under the orders of the government of Mexico to treat all prisoners taken in arms as pirates, but was reminded that he was himself the government of Mexico. He declared that he was not aware that Fannin had surrendered under terms of capitulation, and threatened that he would have Urrea executed for deceiving him, if he ever regained power. Santa Anna desired to treat with Houston for terms of peace and his release, but Houston informed him that he had no authority, and that the matter must be referred to the government of Texas. Santa Anna then proposed an armistice, which was agreed to. SAN JACINTO 207 He wrote an order to General Filisola for him to retire to Bexar and to notify General Gaona to do the same. General Urrea was to be directed to retire to Guadalupe Victoria, and the prisoners at Goliad, captured at Copano, were to be released. As soon as the dispatches were written, they were sent off by Deaf Smith. Houston then sent for Santa Anna's tent, which he had erected near him, and delivered to him his private baggage untouched. There was considerable excitement among the Texan soldiers when it was known that Santa Anna was a prisoner. Some of the more violent wanted to kill him on the spot, and Houston ordered a guard around his tent for its protection. The news of Santa Anna's defeat reached General Filisola on the afternoon of the 22d, from the mouth of an officer who had succeeded in crossing Vince's Bayou on horseback. It was at first disbelieved, but other fugitives came in and confirmed it. General Gaona had previously joined Filisola with his col- umn, and a portion of his troops had crossed the Brazos on their way to Nacogdoches. They were recalled, and dispatches were sent to General Urrea at Matagorda, and to Colonel Salas at Columbia, to join Filisola as soon as possible. Filisola was informed that the victorious Texan army numbered 1200 or 1500 men, and decided to fall back to a more secure position. He retreated to a place on the road to Victoria, and on the 26th was joined by General Urrea. The commanders in consultation decided to 208 SAM HOUSTON retire beyond the Colorado, and await instructions and reinforcements from the Mexican authorities. Their troops numbered about 2500 men, but they were worn out and discouraged, and destitute of sup- plies. On the 27th, Deaf Smith reached the Mexican army with Santa Anna's dispatches, and, although the retreat had already been decided upon, it was agreed to have it considered as under Santa Anna's orders. General Woll was sent to Houston's camp with stipulations on the part of Filisola that he should be allowed to supply himself with cattle for provisions on his retreat, and with secret instructions to inform himself of the condition and strength of the Texan force. WoU's latter purpose was suspected, and he was detained as a prisoner. General Cos had also been captured on the 24th, as he was endeavor- ing to make his way through the Brazos bottom. The Mexican troops continued their retreat with great difficulty, the roads being in a horrible condition, and the men and animals utterly worn out. They reached Victoria May 7, where they halted. The news of the victory of San Jacinto did not reach the government on Galveston Island until April 27. It caused great rejoicing, and President Burnett and his Cabinet, who had been making prep- arations for a farther flight, if necessary, took pas- sage for Houston's camp. There negotiations were opened with Santa Anna. He was ready to promise anything to secure his liberty. Houston addressed a note to Rusk suggesting the conditions of a treaty to SUGGESTIONS FOR A TREATY 209 be made with him. They were the recognition of the independence of Texas by Mexico; the establislunent of the Rio Grande as the boundary between the two countries ; indemnity for all losses sustained by Texas during the war; Santa Anna and other officers to be retained as hostages until the ratification of the terms of the treaty by the Mexican government; release of the Texan prisoners and Mexican citizens favorable to the cause of Texas who had been arrested, and the restoration of their property; immediate with- drawal of the Mexican troops from the territory of Texas, and the cessation of hostilities by sea and land; a guarantee for the surrender of all Mexican prisoners as soon as the terms of the treaty were com- plied with. It was also suggested that agents be appointed to the United States to secure the media- tion of that country between Texas and Mexico. A minority of the Cabinet, headed by Lamar, who had been appointed Secretary of War, in place of Rusk, who had been made a brigadier-general and given command of the army, opposed any negotiations with Santa Anna. They argued that as a prisoner no agreement that he might make would be binding upon the government of Mexico, and that as he had violated the laws of war of civilized nations by his cruelty, he should be brought to trial and punished with death. Houston, being incapacitated by his wound from active service, addressed a farewell order to the army : — 210 SAM HOUSTON Headquarters, San Jacinto, May 5, 1836. CoMEADES, — Circumstances connected with the battle of the 21st render our separation for the pres- ent unavoidable. I need not express to you the many- painful sensations which that separation inflicts upon me. I am solaced, however, by the hope that we shall soon be reunited in the cause of liberty. Brig- adier-General Rusk is appointed to command the army for the present. I confide in his valor, his patriotism, his wisdom. His conduct in the battle of San Jacinto was sufficient to secure your confidence and regard. The enemy, although retreating, are still within the limits of Texas ; their situation being known to you, you cannot be taken by surprise. Discipline and subordination will render you invincible. Your valor and heroism have proved you unrivaled. Let not contempt for the enemy throw you off your guard. Vigilance is the first duty of the soldier, and glory the proudest reward of his toils. You have patiently endured privations, hardships, and difficulties unappalled ; you have encountered two to one of the enemy against you, and borne yourselves in the onset and conflict of battle in a manner un- known in the annals of modern warfare. While an enemy to independence remains in Texas your work is incomplete ; but when liberty is firmly established by your patience and your valor, it will be fame enough to say, "I was a member of the army of San Jacinto." TREATY SIGNED " 211 In taking leave of my brave comrades in arms, I cannot suppress the expression of that pride which I so justly feel in having had the honor to command them in person, nor will I withhold the tribute of my warmest admiration and gratitude for the promptness with which my orders were executed, and union maintained through the army. At parting my heart embraces you with gratitude and affection. Sam Houston, Commander-in- Chief, He was taken on his cot on board the steamer Yel- lowstone May 7, and in company with President Bur- nett and the Cabinet, Santa Anna and his staff, and the rest of the prisoners, left for Galveston Island. Here Houston was transferred to the little schooner Flora, and sailed for New Orleans for medical treat- ment. The government and Santa Anna went to Yelasco, leaving the Mexican soldiers herded in a camp on the island. At Velasco a treaty was signed, May 14, embodying the conditions suggested by Houston. The portion in relation to the cessation of hostilities, the surrender of prisoners, and the agreement for indemnities was public, but that in regard to the acknowledgment of the independence of Texas by Mexico was made a separate secret treaty, at the suggestion of Santa Anna, lest it should be repudiated by the Mexican government before he arrived home. It was agreed that he should be sent to Vera Cruz as soon as possible in order that he might fulfill the conditions of the treaty. 212 - SAM HOUSTON During the land campaign some operations liad been performed by the Texan navy. Two small schooners, the Invincible and the Liberty, had been purchased and put in commission. Two others, the Independence and the Brutus, were afterward ob- tained. These vessels cruised oE the coast for the purpose of interrupting the supplies of the Mexican troops by sea. Early in April the Invincible had an engagement for two hours with the Mexican vessel Montezuma off Brazos Santiago, and drove her ashore. The Invincible also captured the American brig Pocket, bound for Matamoras, with supplies for the Mexican troops. The Texan vessels were manned by volunteer crews, who were as ready to turn their hands to fighting by sea as by land. Some of the sailors had possibly seen service with Lafitte, and the commanders were as handy and brisk in fighting as in meeting the exigencies of navigation in times when the merchant service had all the attributes of adven- ture. "Mexican" Thompson was by no means the only daring and desperate adventurer upon the Gulf coast in those days, and there was no lack of men ready to take service on either side from sheer love of fighting or the hope of plunder. The American and English governments were obliged to keep cruis- ers in the Gulf for the protection of their merchant shipping, and on several occasions the belligerents were taken in hand and threatened with prosecution under the laws against piracy. The little Texan vessels inflicted a good deal of annoyance upon Mexi- CRITICISMS ON THE CAMPAIGN 213 can commerce, and tlie Mexican government sent agents to Europe to endeavor to secure a more for- midable fleet. A great deal of local controversy lias arisen over Houston's conduct of the San Jacinto campaign, and some very bitter criticisms have been made upon it. Some of the leading officers, who were afterward opposed to him politically, charged him with coward- ice, and asserted that he was forced to fight by the demands of his men, and their threats to depose him if he did not. Houston's unsparing tongue and re- criminating charges aggravated their violence, and the harshest personalities were exchanged. Houston defended himself at length in his last speech in the United States Senate, February 28, 1859. In it he gave a history of the campaign, and accused Colonel Sidney Sherman and other officers of cowardice and misconduct. Ex-President Anson Jones, in his vol- ume "Memoranda and Official Correspondence re- lating to the History of Texas and its Annexation," published to exploit himself at the expense of Hous- ton, declared that Houston's plan was not to fight at all, but to fall back behind the Neches, which at one time had been claimed by the United States as the boundary of its territory. It was expected that this would not be respected by Santa Anna, and that he would come into collision with the United States troops which had been advanced beyond the Sabine under General E. P. Gaines. This would give an excuse for active hostilities on the part of the United 214 SAM HOUSTON States, and a war of conquest against Mexico, such as was afterward brought on by the movement of General Taylor's troops to the Eio Grande. Jones asserted that Houston had told him, while the army was encamped in the Brazos bottom, that he intended to retreat, and "win a bloodless victory." He be- lieved that there was an understanding with Presi- dent Jackson in accordance with this scheme. It is true that on the outbreak of hostilities between Texas and Mexico, General Gaines was ordered to advance to the frontier under instructions from the Secretary of War to prevent any attack by the Indian tribes against the people of either Texas or the United States. But he was ordered to observe a strict neu- trality between the contending parties, and to permit neither one of them to cross the boundary in arms. Gaines concentrated several regiments at the Sabine, and applied for permission to cross the boundary in case the Mexicans threatened the frontier with a hos- tile force. It was given to him in his discretion, but he was advised not to advance beyond Nacogdoches. There is no doubt that President Jackson, like the majority of the people of the United States, earnestly sympathized with the Texan colonists in their struggle for independence. But there is nothing to indicate that it was not his purj)ose to observe a complete neutrality, and no evidence whatever to show that there was such an understanding between himself and Houston, as intimated by Jones. It was a proper measure of precaution to advance a force to the bor- PLAN OF CAMPAIGN 215 der to prevent the violation of United States territory by either party, and to prevent the possibility of any disturbance by the fickle and turbulent Indians. The presence of General Gaines's force, undoubtedly, had a quieting effect upon the latter, who might have been persuaded by the Mexican agents to take up arms against the colonists. Houston's plan of campaign probably was to fall back until he was joined by a sufficient force to give battle to the Mexican army, if it remained concen- trated, if he had to retreat beyond the Trinity or even to the Sabine. When the news reached him, at his camp on the Brazos, that Santa Anna had gone south with a small division he moved rapidly after him with the purpose of giving battle, and ending the war at a stroke. He might have attacked and overwhelmed Sesma on the Colorado, but it would only have re- sulted in a concentration of the Mexican columns under Santa Anna, and a further retreat or a battle at a disadvantage. By not attacking Sesma, the chance was that Santa Anna would scatter his forces to occupy the country, and in his impatience and self-confidence put himself into the power of the Texans. This, indeed, was what happened. There is no doubt that Houston followed Santa Anna for the purpose of giving battle, and with the assurance of victory. He addressed a note to Colonel Henry Raguet at Nacogdoches, just before crossing Buffalo Bayou to Harrisburg, in which he said : — "This morning we are in preparation to meet 216 SAM HOUSTON Santa Anna. It is tlie only chance of saving Texas. From time to time I have looked for reinforcements in vain. The Convention adjourning to Harrisburg struck panic throughout the country. Texas could have started at least 4000 men. We will only have about 700 to march with, beside the camp guard. We go to conquer. It is wisdom growing out of ne- cessity to meet the enemy now. Every consideration enforces it. No previous occasion would justify it." Houston might have attacked Santa Anna on the first day of their meeting, and before the latter was reinforced by General Cos. His reason, as given after the battle, was that he did not want "to make two bites of one cherry." What he did accomplish by waiting was to take the Mexican troops by sur- prise, although it was hardly to be counted on in the exercise of ordinary intelligence by Santa Anna. His destruction of Vince's bridge showed that he meant to make the battle a decisive one, and that he had the utmost confidence in a victory. There was no opportunity for the display of tactical skill in the battle, but his dash at the works showed the determi- nation for a vigorous and deadly stroke, which was all that was necessary. Houston's plan of campaign was wise and prudent according to the ordinary rules of war. Perhaps he erred in not counting suffi- ciently on the fighting quality of the Texan as com- pared with the Mexican soldier, and might have de- feated the entire Mexican army with as large odds against him as Taylor had at Buena Vista. But he HIS WISDOM VINDICATED 217 had no artillery, and his troops were raw and with- out discipline. It would have been a great risk, which he was not justified in taking, and the event was a vindication of his wisdom. CHAPTER XII FIRST TERM AS PRESIDENT The army under General Rusk left the camp at San Jacinto to follow the Mexican forces under Fili- sola, and see that they continued their retreat. Af- ter the victory of San Jacinto, companies which had been on their way joined the army, or gathered at the headquarters of the government at Yelasco. Vol- unteer companies which had been raised in the United States came by sea and land. Felix Huston, a prom- inent lawyer of Mississippi, enlisted and equipped a force at his own expense. On the protest of the Mexican minister Gorostiza, the district attorney of Mississippi was instructed to arrest him, but reported that he was unable to do so in the condition of popu- lar feeling. Huston brought in his force, which he claimed to be 500 men, but the adjutant -general of the army reported it as much less. On June 1, Gen- eral Thomas Jefferson Green arrived at Velasco on the steamer Ocean, from New Orleans, with 250 men. The excitement and indignation at the agree- ment for the release of Santa Anna had been grow- ing. Secretary Lamar had issued a letter, full of impassioned and inflated rhetoric, in which he called for his punishment "by the laws of Draco." When ARREST OF SANTA ANNA 219 the volunteers from New Orleans arrived the turbu- lence increased, and it was determined to prevent Santa Anna from sailing for Mexico. He had al- ready gone on board the Texan schooner Invincible with his staff, and had addressed a farewell letter to the Texan soldiers, in which he thanked them for their kindness, and called them his friends. Vice- President Zavala and Bailey Hardiman, the Secre- tary of the Treasury, were to accompany him to Vera Cruz as commissioners to secure the ratification of the treaty. Captain Brown of the Invincible de- clared that he would not sail without orders from "the people." President Burnett, making a virtue of necessity, directed General Green to bring Santa Anna on shore, telling him that he would be held responsible for the life of the prisoner. Santa Anna was found in the cabin, and refused to obey. He was frantic from fear. "He lay on his back, and his respiration was difficult." He declared that he had taken opium, and would soon die. On a threat to put him in irons he got up and joined the party. He was put into the boat, and became still more alarmed at the sight of the crowd on shore. He was reas- sured, and advised to wave the Texan flag. He did so with trembling hands, and was landed at Quin- tana, on the opposite side of the bay from Yelasco, where he was put under guard. Having recovered from his fear of immediate destruction, he addressed a fervent protest to President Burnett, complaining of the violence to which he had been subjected, and 220 SAM HOUSTON of the breaking of tlie terms of the treaty agreement. Burnett replied, apologizing for the violation of the agreement, and saying that its fulfillment would have to be postponed for a season on account of "the highly excited popular indignation." General Rusk was unable to control the turbulent and restless spirits in the army, which Houston had been able to keep in some measure of restraint. They attacked the government for its failure to sup- ply the army with food and clothing, and inflamed the indignation of the soldiers at the proposed release of Santa Anna. On May 29, while the army was at Victoria, a violent and inflammatory address was drawn up, complaining of the necessities of the army, and holding the President responsible for them. It declared that the army would not permit the release of Santa Anna without the sanction of a Texan Con- gress, and demanded that the President should order an election within two months for the establishment of a new government. The address was simply a declaration of insubordination, and the assumption of supreme authority by the army. President Burnett replied that the Executive was not to blame for the wants of which the soldiers complained, as it was totally without means, and mildly informed them that when the civil government was compelled to receive the dictation of an armed force there was serious danger of its being subverted by military misrule. Subsequently he issued an address to the people and the army, arguing forcibly in favor of the advantages TEXAS AND THE UNITED STATES 221 of the treaty with Santa Anna, and the good effect which would be produced on the opinion of the world by sparing the life of the prisoner. President Bur- nett, however, had no authority beyond his eloquence, and the government of Texas was very nearly in a state of anarchy. The army and the people continued to clamor for the execution of Santa Anna, and there was no means either of enforcing order, or of collect- ing money. There was a strong desire for immediate annexa- tion to the United States, which would be an absolute protection against the power of Mexico. On the 20th of May, James Collingsworth and Peter W. Grayson were appointed commissioners to the United States, to ask for the mediation of that country be- tween Texas and Mexico, and for the immediate rec- ognition of Texan independence. They were also instructed to urge the government to accede to the wishes of the Texan people for annexation. The news of the victory of San Jacinto had caused great rejoicing in the United States. Public meetings were held in New York and other cities in favor of the recognition of the independence of Texas. On the 18th of June, Mr. Clay, from the Committee on Foreign Affairs, reported a resolution to recognize the independence of Texas, and supported it in an elo- quent speech, but action upon it was postponed. Mr. Henry M. Morfitt was appointed a special com- missioner to proceed to Texas and examine and report on its condition. 222 SAM HOUSTON After a tedious voyage, Houston arrived at New Orleans on the 11th of May. His wound had not received proper attention, and was beginning to show signs of mortification. He was greatly reduced in strength, and lay on his cot on the deck as the vessel ascended the river. News of his approach was for- warded to the city when the Flora reached "English Turn," and the levee was lined with crowds to wit- ness his arrival. He was taken to the house of his old friend. Colonel William Christy, who had served with him as a lieutenant during the Creek war, and who had been very energetic in raising money and volunteers for the assistance of the Texans. Houston was attended by Dr. James Kerr, who had been his physician twenty years before when suffering from the wound received at the battle of To-ho-pe-ka. His recovery was slow and painful. More than twenty pieces of bone were taken from the wound, and he was confined to his bed for several weeks. As soon as he was able to move, he went up the Ked Eiver by steamer to Natchitoches. He proceeded by slow stages to San Augustine, which he reached on the 5th of July. The rmnor had arrived there that the Mexicans were advancing with another invading army. Houston, leaning on his crutches, delivered an address to the citizens, which resulted in the de- parture of 160 men for the army within two days. News was also soon afterward received that Colonels Millard and Wheelock had left the army, with an or- der to the government to deliver up Santa Anna for PROTEST BY HOUSTON 223 immediate execution, and for the arrest of President Burnett. Houston at once sent a protest to General Rusk : — Ayish Bayou, July 26, 1836. To THE General commanding the Army of Texas : Sir^ — I have just heard through a citizen of the army that it is the intention to remove General Santa Anna to the army, and place him upon his trial. I cannot credit this statement ; it is obviously contrary to the true policy of Texas. The advan- tages which his capture presented to us will be de- stroyed. Disregard, if you will, our national char- acter, and place what construction you please upon the rules of civilized warfare, we are compelled by every principle of humanity and morality to abstain from every act of passion or inconsideration that is unproductive of positive good. Execute Santa Anna, and what will be the fate of the Texans who are held prisoners by the Mexicans ? What will be the condition of the North Americans residing within the limits of Mexico? Death to them and confis- cation of their property is the least that can be expected. Doubtless torture will be added to the catastrophe, when stimulated by ignorance, fanati- cism, and the last expiring struggle of the priesthood for power and dominion. Texas, to be respected, must be considerate, politic, and just in her actions. Santa Anna living, and secured beyond all danger of escape, in the eastern section of Texas (as I first sug- 224 SA3I HOUSTON gested), may be of incalculable advantage to Texas in her present situation. In cool blood to offer up the living to the manes of the departed only finds an ex- ample in the religion and warfare of the savages. Eegard for one's departed friends should stimulate us in the hour of battle, and would excuse us in the moment of victory for partial excesses, at which our calmer feelings of humanity would relent. The affairs of Texas, as connected with General Santa Anna as President of the Republic of Mexico, have become matter of consideration to which the attention of the United States has been called, and for Texas, at this moment, to proceed to extreme measures, as to the merits or demerits of General Santa Anna, would be treating that government with high disrespect, and I would respectfully add, in my opinion, it would be incurring the most unfor- tunate responsibility for Texas. I, therefore, Commander-in-Chief of the army of the Republic, do solemnly protest against the trial, sentence, and execution of General Antonio Lopez de Santa Anna, President of the Republic of Mexico, until the relations in which we are to stand to the United States shall be ascertained. Sam Houston, Commaiider-in- Chief of the Army. The protest had its effect in calming the vindictive passions of the army, and in preventing the military trial and execution of Santa Anna. The Texan army RETREAT OF MEXICAN ARMY 225 had been swelled to about 2500 men by volunteers from the colonists and from the United States, and was in a very undisciplined and disorganized condi- tion. The ambitious adventurers all coveted imme- diate distinction and authority. "There were very few above the rank of captain who did not aspire to be commander-in-chief." The leaders cultivated popularity by the rough and ready methods of frontier politicians, and the camp was a good deal like a pro- longed political barbecue. General Felix Huston, known among the soldiers as "Old Long Shanks" and "Old Leather Breeches," assumed authority, and conducted himself like the leader of a popular mob. Meanwhile, the Mexican troops had retreated from the territory of Texas. When the news of the defeat at San Jacinto reached the City of Mexico, Tornel, the Secretary of War, sent a dispatch to General Filisola to hold San Antonio, announcing that fresh preparations would be made for an army of invasion. But Filisola' s army was already beyond the Nueces when the order reached him, and he continued his retreat toward Matamoras. He was superseded, and directed to turn the command over to General Urrea, who was already in Matamoras. Urrea commanded the army to halt, but its condition was such that the officers decided that it must reach a place of shelter and supply, or perish. It pushed on and reached Matamoras May 18. No reinforcements were sent by the Mexican government, and the chaos and con- fusion which resulted from the absence of Santa 226 SAM HOUSTON Anna prevented any attempt for tlie renewal of the invasion of Texas. There being no enemy to fight within the limits of the territory schemes were re- newed in the Texan army for the invasion of Mexico, and it was proposed to advance upon Matamoras. To add to the confusion and disorganization the government a]3pointed Secretary Lamar to be com- mander-in-chief, in place of Houston, and he pro- ceeded to the camp to assume the command. This produced great dissatisfaction. The officers protested against his claim. Lamar persisted in his right, and it was agreed to leave it to a vote of the soldiers as to whether they would receive Lamar as commander- in-chief or not. After the usual stump oratory the vote was taken, and, there being an overwhelming majority against Lamar, he retired. The only thing accomplished by the Texan army during the period was the capture of three vessels in the harbor of Copano by a company of twenty mounted rangers under the command of Captain Isaac W. Burton. The company had been sent by General Kusk to see that no body of the enemy re- mained below Refugio. In the harbor of Copano they discovered a vessel, the Watchman, laden with supplies for the Mexican army. A portion of the crew were decoyed on shore. Their boat was seized, and the vessel boarded and captured by the rangers. While the Watchman was lying in the harbor, wait- ing for a favorable wind for Yelasco, two other ves- sels, the Comanche and the Fanny Butler, came in. SANTA APPEALS TO JACKSON 227 The captain of the Watchman was compelled to signal to their commanders to come on board his vessel, where they were seized. The vessels surrendered to boarding parties, and the three were taken to Yelasco. Their supplies were valued at $25,000, and were sent to the army. The rangers received the honorary title of the "Horse Marines" for their exploit. Santa Anna was removed from Quintana to Ve- lasco, and afterward to Columbia. While at Colum- bia a plot was formed to rescue him by the Mexican consul at New Orleans through the instrumentality of a young Spaniard named Bartholomew Pages. It was asserted that an attempt was made to poison the guard by means of wine. Santa Anna was put in irons, and subjected to other indignities. He was fired at by a drunken soldier through the window of the house where he was confined. Finally, he was removed to Orizamba and kept in close confinement. On the advice of Austin, who had returned from the United States and visited him, he addressed a letter to President Jackson asking him to interfere for his release, and professing a desire for the immediate recognition of the independence of Texas by the United States and Mexico. Meanwhile, the Con- gress of Mexico had passed a decree that all treaties and agreements executed by Santa Anna while he was a prisoner were null and void. A proclamation was issued by President Burnett on the 23d of July for a general election, to be held on the 1st of September, for the choice of a President 228 SAM HOUSTON and Congress to take the place of the provisional government. The question of an application for annexation to the United States was also submitted to the popular vote. Politics grew quickly and rankly in Texas. There were two parties, one in favor of Stephen F. Austin, and one, headed by the Whartons, in favor of ex-Governor Henry Smith. Houston was nominated by mass meetings at Colum- bia, San Augustine, and other places. He professed an unwillingness to be a candidate, but it is not prob- able that he was very strenuous in resisting the invi- tations. His prestige as the victor of San Jacinto and his gifts of personal popularity resulted in a triumphant election. He received 4374 votes, to 745 for Smith and 587 for Austin. Mirabeau B. Lamar was elected Vice-President, on the strength, Houston said, of an extra line in the latter 's report of the battle of San Jacinto. The application for annexa- tion to the United States was voted for with practical unanimity. The first Congress of Texas assembled at Columbia, October 3. The date for the inaugura- tion of the new President was fixed for December 1, but President Burnett was desirous of escaping from his anomalous position of provisional and inefficient authority, and resigned to allow the permanent gov- ernment to come into power. Houston was installed on October 22, and delivered an extemporaneous in- augural address. He urged the necessity of main- taining the army in a state of vigilance and discipline to meet any invasion of the enemy. He pointed out INAUGURAL ADDRESS 229 the importance of establishing friendly relations with the Indian tribes, which could be secured by a course of even-handed justice. He expressed warm thanks to those who had aided the country in its struggle for independence, and he hoped that the United States would respond favorably to the appeal of a willing people for annexation. In concluding, he indulged in one of the histrionic effects of which he was fond. He disengaged his sword, and, after a pause and ap- parent struggle with his emotions, he handed it to the presiding officer, saying, "It now, sir, becomes my duty to make a presentation of this sword, the em- blem of my past office. I have worn it with some humble pretentions in the defense of my country, and should the danger of my country again call for my services, I expect to resume it, and respond to that call, if needful, with my blood and my life." Houston addressed himself with great practical sagacity to the duties of his office. He appointed the two competitors for the Presidency to places in his Cabinet. Austin was made Secretary of State, and Smith Secretary of the Treasury. Colonel William H. Wharton was appointed minister to the United States, and General Memucan Hunt was afterward added as a commissioner to urge annexation. Colo- nel J. Pinkney Henderson was appointed minister to Great Britain and France. The duties of the new government of Texas were heavy. It had to main- tain an army to meet a possible invasion, to equip an adequate navy for the defense of the coast, to de- 230 SAM HOUSTON fend the frontiers against the always turbulent and dangerous Indians, to provide for the administration of justice and all the functions of a civil government, without a dollar in the treasury or any adequate means available for taxation. Congress immediately passed an act authorizing the President to issue bonds to the amount of $5,000,000, payable in thirty years, and commissioners were appointed to go to the United States to attempt to negotiate the loan. Ad- ditional bounties were offered for volunteers, and the President was authorized to increase and reorganize the army. An act was passed for the increase of the navy by the purchase of a twenty -four-gun sloop-of- war, two steamers, and two eleven -gun schooners. The rates of duties on imports were fixed. The courts were organized, a land office and mail routes established. The boundaries of the Republic were decided to extend from the Sabine to the Rio Grande, and northward to the forty-second parallel of latitude, which would have included the greater portion of New Mexico. The boundary line of the province had been somewhat indefinite under the authority of Spain and Mexico, but its relative place between Texas and New Mexico was well understood, and there was no foundation for the claim to the forty- second parallel. Among the measures of Congress was one characteristic of the wild-cat schemes in- vented by adventurers and land speculators. An act was passed to incorporate the Texas Railroad, Navi- gation, and Banking Company, of which Branch T. WILD-CAT SCHEME 231 Archer was president. The company was given ex- traordinary and monopolistic powers. It was allowed to discount 130,000,000 upon a cai3ital of $10,000,- 000, to build railroads and canals from the Sabine to the Rio Grande and regulate its own charges, to lay out town sites with extensive land grants, and in general to control the future business and develop- ment of Texas. For these enormous privileges, it agreed to pay a bonus of only $25,000 into the trea- sury. The scheme was a gigantic fraud and confi- dence game. The capital stock was subscribed, but none of the money was paid in. The fictitious shares were sold and traded as elements of a swindle. An attempt was made to bribe Houston by sending him a share of the stock, but he returned it, and vigor- ously opposed the bill. The charter, of course, was eventually forfeited by the failure of the subscribers to comply with its conditions. After a session of two months Congress adjourned, to meet May 1 at Hous- ton, the newly founded city at the head of Buffalo Bayou, which was declared the capital. One of the pressing questions was the disposition to be made of Santa Anna. When Houston arrived at Columbia, previous to his inauguration, Santa Anna sent a request for him to come and see him, and Houston did so. The prisoner was much af- fected. He embraced Houston, and wept as his head rested on Houston's broad chest. Houston patted him and consoled him as he would a frightened child. He procured Santa Anna some additional comforts, 232 SAM HOUSTON and promised to do liis utmost to secure his release. He sent a memorandum to Santa Anna, in which he suggested that he should communicate with President Jackson, expressing his willingness to favor the an- nexation of Texas to the United States, and to urge Jackson to become responsible for the fulfillment of Santa Anna's stipulations to the people of Texas. He advised him to maintain his authority as Presi- dent of Mexico, although a prisoner, and to issue his instructions to the Mexican minister at Washington accordingly. After the inauguration, Santa Anna addressed a letter to the President petitioning for his release, which was referred to Congress. The mem- bers of Congress shared the prevailing indignation against Santa Anna, and passed a resolution that he should be retained as a prisoner. Houston vetoed the bill, and, after an excited debate, the question was left to the decision of the President. In the mean time. President Jackson had responded in kindly terms to Santa Anna's appeal for his media- tion, and invited him to visit Washington on his release. Houston decided to release the prisoner at once, and send him to Washington with an escort. Santa Anna and his party set out for Washington on November 25, by way of New Orleans. He was entertained at dinner by President Jackson, and sent by an American man-of-war to Vera Cruz, where he arrived February 23, 1837. He found that he had fallen into complete disfavor, and retired to his estate at Mango del Clavo. His old rival Bustamente, hav- RECOGNITION OF TEXAS 233 ing been recalled from exile, was triumpliantly chosen President at the ensuing election in March, Santa Anna receiving but two votes. It is an evidence of Santa Anna's inherent meanness of character that he borrowed 12000 from Colonel Bernard E. Bee, one of his escort, for which he gave a draft. On his re- turn home he allowed the draft to be protested, and never paid the debt. His more honorable enemies did it for him; the legislature of Texas afterward made an appropriation to indemnify Colonel Bee. The question of the recognition of the indepen- dence of Texas by the United States caused a good deal of political excitement in that country, and was the beginning of the prolonged and violent agitation which accompanied the project of annexation. While the majority of the people of the United States un- doubtedly were proud of the courage of their kins- men in Texas, and enthusiastic over the prospects of their independence, the shadow of the extension of the slave power, foreboded by annexation, alarmed the Northern politicians, and alienated a portion of the people. The stories against the character of the Texan colonists were revived, and the revolt was again attributed to a filibuster conspiracy. There were some prudent suggestions that the recognition of the independence of Texas would bring on a war with Mexico, but as a whole the opj)osition was generated by political means, and the majority of the people of the United States were really in favor of it. Commissioner Morfitt had returned, and made a fa- 234 SAM HOUSTON vorable report as to the condition of Texas. He esti- mated the population of the country at about 58,000, of whom 30,000 were Americans or Europeans, 3670 Mexicans, 5000 negroes, and 20,000 Indians, exact figures being, of course, unobtainable in regard to the Indians. He described the colonists to be in a condition to maintain their independence, and pointed out that their character and habits enabled them to carry on a war with but little cost to themselves. He estimated the debts and obligations of Texas at about $1,250,000. President Jackson, notwithstanding his strong sympathies with the people of Texas, and his desire and expectation of the ultimate annexation of the territory, expressed himself in a very conservative manner in his communication to Congress. In trans- mitting the report of Commissioner Morfitt he said in regard to annexation, "Necessarily a work of time, and uncertain in itself, it is calculated to expose our conduct to misconstruction in the eyes of the world." On December 23, he sent a message to Congress in regard to the recognition of the independence of Texas, in which he said that "prudence would dictate that the United States should stand aloof until the independence of Texas had been recognized by Mex- ico, or one of the great foreign powers, or until events should have proved beyond dispute the ability of the people to maintain their independent sover- eignty."- He, however, referred the matter to the dis- cretion of Congress, and intimated that he would be governed by its decision. On the 11th of January, TEXAS RECOGNIZED 235 Hon. Robert J. Walker, Senator from Mississippi, introduced a resolution for the recognition of Texas as an independent nation. The question was post- poned until March 1, when the resolution was taken up. After a warm debate, in which speeches in favor of recognition were made by Clay, Calhoun, Benton, Preston, and others, the resolution was adopted by a vote of twenty-four to nineteen. The vote was not on strict sectional or party lines. Senators King, of Georgia, and King, of Alabama, and other Southern members, voting against recognition. An attempt was made to reconsider the vote the next day, and it only failed by a vote of twenty-four to twenty -four. President Jackson approved the resolution as the last act of his official life. Secretary of State Forsyth informed Minister Wharton that the question of an- nexation could not then be considered by the United States government. General Henderson, the Texan minister, was fa- vorably received by the British government, although the Anti-Slavery Society promptly protested against the independence of Texas, on the ground that Mex- ico had declared the abolition of slavery, while the American colonists maintained it. The British ministry agreed to make a special commercial treaty with Texas, although for the time being it refused to recognize her independence from Mexico. A simi- lar arrangement was made with the government of France, and the French minister at Washington was directed to send a commissioner to Texas to examine and report on the condition of the country. 236 SAM HOUSTON In accordance with his settled policy Houston ap- pointed commissioners to visit the various tribes of Indians, and arrange for treaties of friendship and alliance. No difficulty had occurred, except with the Caddoes, who had recently entered the territory from the United States, and had been committing some depredations upon the outlying settlers. Mexican agents had been busy among the Indian tribes, en- deavoring to induce them to commence hostilities against the colonists. A delegation of twenty from the Northern Indians had been persuaded to visit Matamoras to form a treaty with Mexico for that purpose. But Houston's reputation was well estab- lished among all the Indians as the friendly white chief, and the efforts of the Mexican authorities to engage them in definite warfare with the colonists were unavailing. No trouble occurred from the In- dians during his term as President, except the indi- vidual collisions and inevitable depredations and aggressions on both sides which accompany the con- tact of the two races. Although friendly to the In- dians, Houston knew their unstable nature and the perils of the situation, and maintained companies of rangers to punish thefts and attacks, and encouraged the building of block-houses upon the frontier. Congress reassembled on May 1, and Houston sent them an elaborate and business-like message. He congratulated them on the recognition of the inde- pendence of Texas by the United States, and said, " We now occupy the proud attitude of a sovereign HOUSTON'S MESSAGE 237 and independent Republic, wliicli will force upon us the obligation of evincing to the world that we are worthy to be free." He urged that their legislation should be not only for present emergencies, but for a permanent system adapted to the future growth and development of the country. The finances of the Eepublic were the most pressing subject of attention. None of the authorized 15,000,000 loan had been raised in the United States, owing to the depressed condition of the money market; and the sales of the land scrip had not been productive, owing, as the President believed, to the mismanagement of the agents in New Orleans and Mobile, who had ren- dered no account of their transactions, and had al- lowed drafts upon them to go to protest. Claims upon the treasury had only been met by promises to pay when in funds, and were sold to speculators at a heavy discount. The land law, passed at the last session over the President's veto, had proved imprac- ticable and unsatisfactory, and he recommended mea- sures for ascertaining the location of all the occupied lands in the country to prevent litigation about titles. He spoke strongly in regard to the African slave trade. He declared that there was evidence that thousands of slaves had been imported to the island of Cuba for the purpose of being transferred to Texas. The Texan minister had been instructed to report the facts to the United States government. The navy of Texas was necessary for its immediate defense, and it was the duty of the United States and 238 SAM HOUSTON of England to employ a portion of their force in the GuK to arrest the accursed traffic. Nothing had occurred in regard to the question of annexation, but it was hoped that the next session of the Congress of the United States would take up the subject in a friendly spirit. England had given indications of friendliness and good- will to the new Republic. No change had taken place in the relations between Texas and Mexico. Texas was confident that she could maintain her rights, and was not willing to in- voke the mediation of other powers. Mexico, while apparently determined to protract the war, was torn by internal convulsions, and unable to defend her fron- tier against the attacks of predatory Indians. The army of Texas was in a good condition, and able to meet any invading force brought against it. Al- though Mexico had refused to enter into any arrange- ment for the exchange of prisoners, he recommended the release, upon parole, of the Mexican soldiers still detained in the country. Although Houston had spoken favorably of the condition of the Texan army, it was still disorgan- ized and turbulent, and he took measures to reduce and practically disband it. General Felix Huston had succeeded to the command on the retirement of General Rusk, who had been appointed Secretary of War in Houston's Cabinet. He had no capacity or training as a soldier, and acted merely as the leader of an armed and turbulent mob. General James Hamilton, who had been governor of South Carolina, GENERAL FELIX HUSTON 289 and had manifested an active interest in the Texan struggle for independence, was invited to take com- mand of the army, but declined. Albert Sidney Johnston, who had recently resigned from the United States army and come to Texas after the battle of San Jacinto, had joined Rusk's army as a private. His soldierly appearance and manifest ability caused him to be promoted to be adjutant-general, and, after the refusal of General Hamilton to accept the com- mand, he was appointed by President Houston the senior brigadier-general. General Felix Huston had indicated his intention of retaining the command by the summary process of challenging and shooting any one who should be appointed to displace him. When Johnston arrived with his commission on the 4th of February, Huston promptly challenged him, and, in the duel which took place the following day, Johnston was severely wounded in the hip and inca- pacitated from further service. No one was found to accept the command at the cost of fighting so dan- gerous a duelist as Huston, and he retained his posi- tion at the head of the army. He was full of schemes for the invasion of Mexico, and at the opening of the session of Congress in May he repaired to the capitol to obtain authority for an attack upon Matamoras. Houston determined to put a stop to all such foolish enterprises, and to get rid of an army which was not only a heavy expense, but a peril to the maintenance of the civil government. Under the influence of their commander the volunteers had threatened to "chastise 240 SAM HOUSTON the President, kick Congress out of doors, and give laws to Texas." Among General Huston's ideas of maintaining his popularity with the soldiers was to indulge them occasionally in general sprees, which usually wound up in a free fight in which several vv^ould be killed. The President was convinced that the unsettled government and internal troubles of Mexico would prevent any serious attempt at inva- sion, and that an impromptu levy of the colonists would make a better army, if necessar}?", than the undisciplined and dangerous force of foreign adven- turers collected at San Antonio. While General Huston was urging the Matamoras expedition upon the members of Congress, the President, on May 18, issued orders to the Secretary of War to proceed secretly and swiftly to headquarters, and furlough all the companies except 600 men. There was no leader to resist the order, and the volunteers were appar- ently wearied of an adventure which promised neither profit nor glory. They were marched to various ports on the coast, and took their departure for the United States under a furlough to return within thirty days if called for. General Huston, deprived of his armed mob, returned soon afterward to the United States. General Johnston was retained in the command, with a furlough- to enable him to re- cover from his wound. There is no doubt that, if the finances of the country had been able to sustain the expense, the maintenance of a well-organized and disciplined army would have been of advantage to CONDITIONS OF THE TIME 241 Texas, and prevented the occasional raids by the Mexicans which afterward took place. But the treasury was empty, and the army could only have been paid by the issue of irredeemable paper money, with its certainty of bringing bankruptcy and repudi- ation. The army was mainly composed of lawless and adventurous volunteers who were ready for any mischievous enterprise that would have driven Mexico into active hostilities. And the temperament of the Congress was neither stable nor judicious enough to make it sure that it would exercise a restraining in- fluence. In the mean time, immigration was coming into the country, strengthening its resources and means of defense, and every day in which fighting could be avoided was an advantage. Already trade was being renewed along the Mexican frontier, in spite of the hostile attitudes of the two governments, and there was a chance that there would be no further war. The condition of the land grants had made a great deal of trouble. The locations of the leaofues and labors under the Mexican system had conflicted with the grants by acres under the new government, and many of the old settlers had resisted the change. The empresario grants, which had been used for spec- ulative purposes, had, created a host of fictitious claims, many of them held by innocent persons who had been swindled in buying the scrip. The acts of the last legislature of Coahuila and Texas in dispos- ing of large portions of land in Texas at nominal 242 SAM HOUSTON prices, although repudiated, had produced another batch of claims. The laws giving the preference in locations to volunteers, and the negotiations of public land scrip in the United States, created additional confusion. A large portion of the time of Congress was devoted to struggling with this question. Hous- ton vetoed several unsatisfactory and mischievous bills, and it was not until the close of the last session that the land office was opened under intelligent and practicable regulations. The total lack of money was the most serious bur- den upon the new government. The collapse of the banking system in the United States, and the conse- quent financial distress, had prevented any success in negotiating a general loan. The sales of public land scrip produced little or nothing, owing to the confu- sion of titles and the doubt as to whether Texas could maintain her independeiice. It would appear that Houston shared the general delusion in regard to the means to be expected from this source, and blamed the agents for mismanagement when there was really no demand for the lands which was not more than supplied by the sales and trades of individual grants. The treasury remained empty, and the audited claims were used as currency or hawked about at a ruinous discount. On June 6, the President was obliged to send a special message to Congress, calling attention to the condition of the quartermaster's department of the army. He said that the government was unable to obtain any supplies upon its own credit, and the FINANCIAL DIFFICULTIES 243 Executive had been compelled to give his individual obligation, indorsed by some of the members. A part of the army was in an actual state of mutiny for the want of provisions, and Galveston Island would have been deserted but for the relief thus obtained. Since he came into office the President had received only 1500 for provisions for the troops. The public officers had received no salary, and had tendered their resignations from time to time on account of being unable to meet their expenses. Congress did the best it could by passing financial acts, but it was like trying to run a mill without water. There were the usual attempts of new and impoverished countries to create money by fiat legislation. In May, Con- gress passed an act authorizing the issue of promis- sory notes to the amount of 11,000,000. This was vetoed by the President, on the ground that half that amount was all that was necessary for a circulating medium or could be kept at par. The issue was re- stricted to ^500,000, but a bill was passed authoriz- ing the President to reissue the notes, as they were returned to the treasury, in his discretion, to an amount not to exceed 11,000,000. At the close of Houston's administration the promissory notes, which stood at about sixty -five cents on the dollar, amounted to '1739,789. The total indebtedness, including au- dited claims, amounted to r|l, 942,000. The customs duties, which were the only source of reliable revenue, amounted to 8278,134 for the last year. The record of Texan finance, under the circumstances, was a cred- 244 SAM HOUSTON itable one, and it was Houston's firm hand and saga- cious judgment, restraining extravagance and pre- venting false financial schemes, which kept down the indebtedness, and enabled the government to carry on its operations without collapse. Among the events of the year was the loss of the Texan vessel the Independence, which was captured April 17, about thirty miles off Velasco, by two Mex- ican vessels, the Libertador and the Yincedor del Alamo. After a severe fight of two hours, the Inde- pendence surrendered, and was taken to Matamoras. On board was Colonel William H. Wharton, the Texan minister to the United States, who was return- ing home. His brother. Colonel John A. Wharton, was sent with thirty Mexican prisoners, to obtain the release of the captives by exchange. He was thrown into prison by the Mexican authorities, but both the Whartons and the other prisoners eventually effected their escape by the aid of friends in Matamoras. The British vessel Ellen Russell was captured in the Gulf by a Texan vessel, on suspicion of being laden with contraband of war, but proved to have only merchandise. She was released by President Houston, and an indemnity afterward paid by the government. Lorenzo de Zavala, who had been elected Vice- President in the Provisional Government of Texas, died at his residence near San Jacinto, November 15. Zavala was a man of strong patriotic impulses, and more than ordinary capacity and integrity, who, un- ''THE FATHER OF TEXAS'' 245 der better circumstances, would liave exercised a commanding and wliolesome influence on the affairs of Mexico. He would not submit to the tyranny of Santa Anna, and fled to Texas, where he entered heartily into the struggle for independence. Al- though a Mexican, he was highly esteemed by the Texan leaders for his integrity and sincerity, as well as for his courage and sagacity. Stephen F. Austin died at Columbia, December 27, from an attack of pneumonia. He was but forty-three years of age. Austin was a man of the highest character, of judicial moderation and prudence, as well as energy and per- severance. He appreciated the conditions on which alone a permanent and prosperous colony could be founded, and carried them out with rare tact and sagacity. He encouraged industry, and governed the lawless elements of the population by his weight of character and personal influence. To him more than to any other is due the creation of an American State in Texas. He was forced into political prominence by the demands of the time rather than any desire of his own, and was as modest and self-sacrificing as he was sagacious and practical. Public honors were paid at his funeral by the President and members of Congress, and the remains were taken on the steamer Yellowstone to Peach Point, near the mouth of the Brazos. President Houston issued an address begin- ning, "The Father of Texas is no more," and order- ing all officers, civil and military, to wear crape for thirty days, in honor of his memory. 246 SAM HOUSTON Houston's manner of life as President of the Ee- public of Texas was a singular compound of ceremo- nial dignity and frontier primitiveness, mucli like that of an aboriginal potentate. He lived in a log cabin in the frank and ready familiarity with all comers which the times compelled, and which suited his gen- ius for popularity. But he put on the airs of state on occasion, and is reported to have worn a sort of velvet robe, which must have been in singular contrast to the furniture and appearance of the audience chamber, when he gave formal audience to the agents of foreign nations. He still kept up his drinking habits, and was king of the riots, as well as of the counsels, of his vigorous and boisterous associates, without losing his sense of dignity or their respect. An interesting glimpse of' Houston and his surround- ings is given through the keenly observant eyes of Audubon, the naturalist, who visited the town of Houston in May, 1837. He says in his diary: — "We walked toward the President's house, accom- panied by the Secretary of the Navy, and as soon as we rose above the bank we saw before us a level of far-extending prairie, destitute of timber and rather poor soil. Houses, half finished, and most of them without roofs, tents, and a liberty pole, with the cap- itol, were all exhibited to our view at once. We approached the President's mansion, however, wad- ing in water above our ankles. This abode of Presi- dent Houston is a small log house, consisting of two rooms and a passage through, after the Southern AUDUBON'S IMPRESSIONS 247 fashion. The moment we stepped over the threshold, on the right hand of the passage, we found ourselves ushered into what in other countries would be called the ante-chamber; the ground floor, however, was muddy and filthy, a large fire was burning, and a small table, covered with paper and writing materials, was in the centre; camp beds, trunks, and different materials were strewed around the room. We were at once presented to several members of the Cabinet, some of whom bore the stamp of men of intellectual ability, simple, though bold, in their general appear- ance. Here we were presented to Mr. Crawford, an agent of the British minister to Mexico, who has come here on some secret mission. "The President was engaged in the opposite room on some national business, and we could not see him for some time. Meanwhile, we amused ourselves by walking in the capitol, which was yet without a roof, and the floors, benches, and tables of both houses of Congress were as well saturated with water as our clothes had been in the morning. Being invited by one of the great men of the place to enter a booth to take a drink of grog with him, we did so ; but I was rather surprised that he offered his name instead of the cash to the bar-keeper. "We first caught sight of President Houston as he walked from one of the grog-shops, where he had been to stop the sale of ardent spirits. He was on his way to his house, and wore a large, gray, coarse hat, and the bulk of his figure reminded me of the 248 SAM HOUSTON appearance of General Hopkins, of Virginia, for, like him, he is upward of six feet high and strong in pro- portion. But I observed a scowl in the expression of his eyes that was forbidding and disagreeable. We reached his abode before him, but he soon came, and we were presented to his Excellency. He was dressed in a fancy velvet coat and trousers trimmed with broad gold lace, and around his neck was tied a cravat somewhat in the style of '76. He received us kindly, was desirous of retaining us for a while, and offered us every facility in his power. He at once removed us from the ante-room to his private cham- ber, which, by the way, was not much cleaner than the former. We were severally introduced by him to the different members of his Cabinet and Staff, and at once asked to drink grog with him, which we did, wishing success to the new Republic. Our talk was short, but the impression which was made on our mind at the time by himself, his officers, and the place of his abode can never be forgotten." Houston was married for the second time in Mar- ion, Alabama, May 9, 1840, to Miss Margaret Moffette Lea. He was then forty-seven years of age, his bride twenty-one. The second Mrs. Houston was a lady of good family, force of character, amia- bility, and considerable literary talent. She was aware of Houston's weaknesses in habits when she married him, and was confident that she could influ- ence him for the better. She did so, and he reformed his habits of drinking and swearing, until finally they were abandoned altogether. CHAPTER XIII SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT — ANNEXATION The Constitution of the Eepublic made the Presi- dent ineligible for two succeeding terms. There were three candidates in the field for the succession to Houston, Mirabeau B. Lamar, the Vice-President, Peter W. Grayson, and James Collingsworth. The contest was a very bitter one, and virulent personal attacks were made against the candidates. Just be- fore the election Grayson committed suicide by shoot- ing himself at Bean's Station, Tennessee, and Col- lingsworth by throwing himself from a steamer into Galveston Bay. Lamar was elected President, and David G. Burnett Vice-President. Lamar was a man of extravagant ideas, and regarded Texas as an established empire, with all the possibilities of terri- torial expansion, unlimited wealth, and military and naval conquest. He was inaugurated December 8, 1838. In his address he declared himself emphati- cally against annexation to the United States, and drew a glowing picture of the advantages that would accrue to Texas from maintaining her own autonomy. In his first message to Congress he recommended the establishment of a national bank, to be founded on the hypothecation of a specific portion of the public 250 SAM HOUSTON domain, the guarantee of tlie plighted faith of the nation, and an adequate deposit of specie or its "equivalent." The specie, or its equivalent, was not forthcoming, and the bank was not organized. Lamar's policy in regard to the Indians was the direct opposite of that of Houston. He declared that they were public enemies or intruders, and had no rights to the soil. If any grants had been made to them by the Mexican government they had been extorted by fear of the tomahawk and the scalping knife, and therefore void. The "solemn declara- tion " made by the Convention of 1835 had never been ratified, and in any case was void because the Indians had not fulfilled their part of its obligations by keeping quiet. He denounced the Indians as pes- tilent and merciless enemies to the settlers, and de- clared in favor of a war against them, which "would admit of no compromise, and have no termination except in their total extinction or total expulsion." There is no doubt that Lamar's policy in regard to the Indians was in accordance with the wishes of the majority of the white settlers. They regarded the aboriginal inhabitants simply as noxious wild beasts, who ought to be cleared from the land like wolves. Constant collisions took place as the restless colonists pushed farther and farther into the interior, and the wild Indians were naturally predatory and barbarous. Those who were partially civilized, like the Chero- kees, occupied rich lands which the settlers coveted, and there was little respect for Indian occupancy or LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 251 agreement as to boundaries. It is one of the most creditable features in Houston's character that he opposed the prevailing animosity of the people against the Indians, and persisted, so far as he had power or influence, in a system of justice and protection of their rights. An occasion for active operations against the Indians was not long wanting. General Cana- lezo, who had succeeded to Filisola in command of the troops on the Rio Grande, endeavored to stir up the Indians to active hostilities against the colonists. He sent one Manuel Flores as agent to the Cherokees and other tribes, with letters to the chiefs urging them to war. Flores and his party were discovered and attacked near Austin by a number of the colo- nists. Flores was killed, and his letters fell into the hands of the Texans. Although there was no evi- dence that the Cherokee chiefs had made, or were likely to make, any agreement with the Mexicans, it was assumed that the danger was pressing, and that the tribe must be expelled from the country. A force was organized by General Albert Sidney John- ston, the Secretary of War, consisting of Colonel Burleson's regiment, which had been fighting the prairie Indians in the West, and volunteer companies under General Rusk and Colonel Landrum, from the eastern settlements, the whole under the command of General K. H. Douglass. The Indians were in- formed in "a firm but friendly manner," by General Johnston, that they must leave the country and sur- render their gunlocks. They refused. They were 252 SAM HOUSTON attacked by the troops on July 14, 1839, near the Cherokee village, and defeated in a sharp engage- ment. They rallied the following day and were again defeated, Bowles, their war chief, being killed. The troops then advanced against the Shawnees, who surrendered without a battle. The Texans burned the cabins and laid waste the cornfields of both these tribes, and the Indians withdrew across the Red Kiver, or scattered to the northern prairies, where they formed hostile and predatory bands against the settlements. Houston was absent from the country on a visit to the United States when this raid took place. He had protested against the repudiation of the "solemn declaration" in Congress, but without avail. On his return, he addressed the citizens of Nacogdoches, who were unanimous in favor of the expulsion of the Cherokees. The most violent charges were made against him, and he was accused of inciting the Indians to resist the government. Threats were made that he would be shot if he at- tempted to speak. He came forward and stilled the crowd by his commanding presence. He denounced the administration for its breach of plighted faith, and accused the soldiers of barbarity in mutilating the body of Bowles. The audience listened in si- lence, and Houston's courage and sincerity triumphed over their tumultuous passions. Trouble broke out with the Comanches from a more reasonable cause. These haughty and untam- able Indians had been accustomed to domineer over LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 253 the timorous Mexicans, and to conduct their negotia- tions in a very masterful and contemptuous fashion. A delegation of the chiefs of the tribe came into San Antonio to arrange a treaty of peace with the Texan commissioners on March 11, 1840. They had agreed to bring in their captives, but only surrendered Ma- tilda Lockhart, a little girl. They alleged that the other twelve prisoners whom they were known to possess had been captured by other tribes. The Lockhart girl said that the other captives were de- tained for ransom in the Indian camp near the town. The chiefs were informed that all the white captives must be brought in, and that they would be detained as prisoners until they were. A company of soldiers was brought into the council room to keep them under guard. The chiefs shouted the war-whoop and drew their knives. A desperate melee took place in the room, in which the Indians were all killed. The warriors on the outside took the alarm, and com- menced to shoot. There was a running fight in the streets of the town, in which a number of Indians, including squaws, were killed. The Comanches were deeply enraged at the slaughter of their chiefs, and determined to avenge it. On the 4th of August, a raiding party of 600 swept down upon the country, and attacked Victoria. They were repulsed, but gathered a great booty of horses and cattle, and mas- sacred a number of the outlying settlers. They then surprised and burned the little town of Linnville on the coast, most of the inhabitants escaping in boats 254 SAM HOUSTON and lighters off shore into the harbor. As the Indi- ans were returning with their booty, they were fol- lowed and attacked by a body of troops raised among the settlers. A battle took place on Plum Creek, in which the Indians were routed and scattered. The government determined to carry the war into the Comanche country. The force under Colonel John H. Moore attacked the principal village of the tribe, on the Ked fork of the Colorado, October 23. It was surrounded at daybreak and surprised. Men, women, and children, were indiscriminately slaugh- tered, and the village burned. The entire Comanche nation was exasperated, and a desolating warfare raged on the frontier during the whole of Lamar's term of office. Companies of rangers were main- tained in service during the period at a great ex- pense, and the frontier settlements were kept in con- tinual turmoil and peril as the result of the President's "vigorous Indian policy." Lamar had no less extensive views in regard to the naval operations of the Republic. In 1838, Mexico had been engaged in a war with France Over the claims of French citizens. The French fleet had bombarded and taken Vera Cruz, and in an attempt to drive them out, Santa Anna had lost his leg, and recovered his popularity. Yucatan had also revolted, and was endeavoring to gain its independence. The Texan navy of four vessels had entirely disappeared at the beginning of Lamar's administration. One was captured, one sunk, and the other two condemned LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 255 as imseaworthy. Appropriations of imaginary funds were made on an extensive scale for the purchase of a new fleet. The steamer Zavala, mounting eight guns, the sloop-of-war Austin, twenty guns, two brigs, the Colorado and Dolphin, and three schoon- ers, the San Bernard, San Antonio, and San Ja- cinto, were purchased on credit. The fleet was put under the command of Commodore E. W. Moore, and sent to Yucatan to aid the insurgents. The Federalists in the Northern States of Mexico had taken advantage of the disturbances to organize a revolt. An adventurer by the name of Canales undertook to found a Federal Republic in North Mexico in alliance with Texas, and persuaded a number of Texans, under Colonels Koss and Jordan, to join him in an invasion across the Rio Grande. They were mere filibusters without the authorization of the Texan government. The expedition shared the usual fate of the invasions of Mexico, in arousing the hostility of the inhabitants and experiencing the treachery of their allies. After fighting several bat- tles and occupying several towns, they were deserted on the field of Saltillo by their allies, but fought their way through the enemy, and retreated in safety to Texas. Lamar's great scheme, however, was the conquest or occupation of New Mexico. An expedition was organized among the adventurers, who had been dis- appointed in the failures to invade Mexico, and Con- gress was asked to authorize and make an appropria- 256 SAM HOUSTON tion for it. Houston, who was a Representative from Nacogdoches, was strongly opposed to it. The de- bate had gone on apparently in its favor, and the usual fiery and flamboyant speeches had been made about planting the Lone Star flag on the cathedral towers of Santa Fe. When they had been concluded, Houston, who had been sitting on one of the back benches, engaged in his usual habit of whittling, rose, and with his practical sense and humorous illustration demolished the scheme. He pointed out the folly of the expedition across 600 miles of unin- habited country, and the mistake of expecting that the people of New Mexico, who were thoroughly Mexicans in their education and sympathies, would receive the invaders otherwise than as enemies. Such an expedition would inevitably arouse the active hos- tility of Mexico and provoke an invasion on the west- ern frontier. Houston took up the arguments of the advocates of the expedition, one after another, and answered them. Coming to the speech of Isaac Yan Zandt, who had spoken in a very "high-falutin " style, he used one of those familiar illustrations which were a feature of his command over a fron- tier audience. He said, "A Tennessee neighbor once stationed his negro, Caesar, with a rifle at a deer drive, and told him to shoot when the animal broke cover. The deer sprang out, but the rifle made no sound. When Caesar was cursed for not shooting, he replied, 'Lord a mighty, massa, dat buck jump so high, I think he break his own neck. ' So with my LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 257 young friend Yan Zandt; lie jumps so liigh in his speecli tliat lie breaks his own neck, and it is not necessary to shoot at him." Houston's arguments prevailed, and Congress refused to authorize the ex- pedition. Lamar, however, persisted, and took the authority which Congress had refused to grant him. He or- dered the Secretary of War to issue arms for the troops, and the brass six-pounder was stamped with the conquering name of "Mirabeau B. Lamar." He issued a proclamation to the people of New Mexico inviting them to become citizens of the Republic of Texas, and to acknowledge its laws. He attempted to disguise the warlike purpose of the expedition by announcing that no attempt would be made to subju- gate the country, but only to establish friendly com- mercial relations with the people in case they did not wish to unite with Texas. Its military form was only intended for defense against the Indians. The expedition started from the neighborhood of Austin June 1, 1841. It numbered about 270 soldiers with a number of teamsters and traders, and three com- missioners to treat with the people of New Mexico. It was under the command of General Hugh McLeod, and President Lamar bade it farewell with his usual outburst of classical oratory. The expedition started too late. It was oppressively hot, and the grass was poor. The guides lost their way, provisions gave out, and the party was harassed by hostile Indians. As the expedition, after great suffering, approached 258 SAM HOUSTON the border of New Mexico, a party on the strongest horses was sent forward to procure relief and provi- sions from the people whom they had come to con- quer. They were made prisoners, and forwarded to Governor Armigo at Santa Fe. Troops were sent against the remainder of the exj^edition, who upon false promises of safety and return home laid down their arms and surrendered. The prisoners were treated with great barbarity. Some of them were shot for attempting to escape, and the others were marched on foot to the City of Mexico, where they were confined in the prisons or made to work with the criminals on the public roads, until they were finally released by the interposition of the foreign ministers. So ended the scheme for the conquest of New Mexico, which, beside its original loss, had a very bad effect upon public opinion in the United States. Jackson wrote to Houston, "The wild-goose chase to Santa Fe was a very ill-judged affair, and the surrender without the fire of a gun has lowered the prowess of the Texans in the minds of the Mexi- cans." General James Hamilton had been appointed min- ister to Great Britain and France. He concluded a convention with Lord Palmerston for the recognition of the independence of Texas, on the condition that Texas would assume fl, 000, 000 of the debt due by Mexico to the English bond-holders. The English Anti-Slavery Society sent its formal protest to Lord Palmerston, to which he replied with his usual civil LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 259 insolence, and tlie official intimation that they were a set of idiots. Daniel O'Connell announced his pur- pose to interrogate the ministry on the matter, and proposed a scheme for settling free negroes from the British colonies in Texas under the protection of Mexico. France followed the example of Great Britain, and acknowledged the independence of Texas, as did also Holland and Belgium. General Hamilton had also been appointed a commissioner to negotiate the five million loan, and attempted to ob- tain the subscriptions of European bankers. He had sanguine hopes of success at one time, and announced that he had made arrangements with the house of Lafitte and Company, of Paris, to open books for the loan. The negotiations fell through, and their fail- ure was charged to the adverse influence of M. Hu- mann, the French Minister of Finance, who had been prejudiced by M. de Saligny, the charge d'affaires in Texas. M. de Saligny had withdrawn in dudgeon, because of a quarrel with Mr. Bullock, an inn -keeper of Austin, in which he considered that the Texan au- thorities had not treated him with becoming respect. It appears that Bullock's pigs intruded into the stable and ate up the corn of M. de Saligny' s horses. Saligny's servant killed one of the pigs, and Bullock horsewhipped the servant. Saligny entered a com- plaint against Bullock, and Bullock ordered him out of his hotel. Saligny applied to the Secretary of State for redress, and failing to get it left the coun- try. This was the story to account for the failure of 260 SAM HOUSTON the French loan, but probably the financial condition and prospects of Texas were a more sufficient reason. At any rate, General Hamilton completely failed with the European capitalists, and Texas was spared the additional burden of a loan which would probably have been wasted in extravagance. The finances of Texas sank to a frightful condition under Lamar's administration. There was no rev- enue except from the customs duties; but as these were receivable in government money they simply canceled so much indebtedness without bringing in any available funds. The public land sales amounted to practically nothing, and the sole resource was the issue of the government promissory notes, called "red-backs." These were issued of all denomina- tions down to twelve and a half cents, and fell in value until they were worth no more than two cents on the dollar, or would not be received at all. It is to the credit of the Texan government, and about the sole financial folly which it did not commit, that it did not attempt to make its notes legal tender, and to compel their circulation under penalties of the law, as was done later under the Southern Confederacy. The public debt of Texas during Lamar's administra- tion was increased by 14,855,215, as compared with $190,000, the expenses during Houston's term, and the condition of the country was one of financial chaos. During the last year of his term Lamar yielded to the disappointment of his high-flown schemes LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 261 and the load of complaint and obloquy, and obtained permission from Congress to abdicate his functions of government. The duties of his offi.ce were per- formed by Vice-President Burnett. At one time, to- ward the close of his administration, affairs became so desperate, and Congress felt itself so helpless, that the members proposed to abandon their places, and go home. Houston made an eloquent speech recalling them to their duty, and on his motion a resolution was adopted "to adjourn until to-morrow at the usual hour." During Lamar's administration the seat of government was removed to a location on the Colorado Kiver, selected by a commission for that purpose, and a town laid out, which was named Austin. At that time it was far beyond the line of settlements and exposed to Indian attacks, so that the members of the government were sometimes obliged to take their turns at standing guard. The principal redeeming feature to the Lamar regime was the foundation given to a system of public education by a grant of land for a university, and appropria- tions of the public domain to each county for the establishment of schools. Houston was the centre of the political opposi- tion to Lamar's administration, and the people were divided into the "Houston" and " anti - Houston " parties, which continued to be the politics of Texas until it became a part of the United States, and, in- deed, never entirely lost their power so long as he lived. He was nominated for President, and be- 262 SAM HOUSTON gan those camj)aigns of stump-speaking which were afterward so marked a feature in the politics of Texas, and such effective means for his retention of power. In the election there were 11,531 votes cast. Houston received 7415, to 3616 for David G. Burnett. Edward Burleson was elected Vice-President. Hous- ton was inaugurated for the second time on the 16th of December, 1841. In his message to Congress he said, "It seems that we have arrived at a crisis which is neither cheering for the present, nor flattering for the future." No change had taken place in the attitude of Mexico. Overtures had been made for the amicable adjust- ment of the difficulties, but they had been rejected, and he would not incur the degradation of further advances. It would be well to encourage Mexican citizens with the kindliest treatment so far as they wished to engage in commerce with the citizens of Texas, but there should be no interference with the revolutions or disturbances in Mexico. It would only exasperate the national enemy, while weakening the resources of Texas. The relations with the In- dians were in a very unsatisfactory condition. Im- mense sums had been spent in fighting them, but without good results. The erection of frontier posts at suitable points, and the establishment of trading stations protected by guards, would insure tranquil- lity and a lucrative commerce, while just and equi- table treaties would maintain a lasting peace. There was not a dollar in the treasury, and the country was SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 263 involved from ten to fifteen millions. " We are not only without money, but without credit, and for want of punctuality without character." It would be nec- essary for Congress to totally suspend the redemption of the liabilities. In order to carry on the govern- ment it would be necessary to make a new issue of paper money, not exceeding $350,000, to be received at par for the government revenues. One million acres in the newly acquired Cherokee country should be specially set apart for the redemption of this issue. Finally, retrenchment and the most absolute economy should be established in the expenditure of the gov- ernment. Houston's first work was to carry out his recom- mendations for economy. Upon his suggestion his own salary was reduced from f 10, 000 to 15000, and those of the other civil officers in the like proportion. Many useless offices were abolished, and the most rigid economy was exercised in every department. All claims, even the most just and pressing, were postponed, and all appropriations by Congress, ex- cept those absolutely necessary to carry on the gov- ernment, were vetoed. Among the claimants was one Colonel Jonathan Bird, who had built a block- house at Birdsville at his own expense for the protec- tion of the frontier. He applied to Congress for reimbursement. The members told him that his claim was a just one, but that it would be useless for them to pass a bill for his relief as the President would veto it. They told him, however, that if he 264 SAM HOUSTON- would see Houston, and get his approval, they would vote the appropriation. Houston told him that his claim ought to be paid, but that he could not approve any demand on the treasury in its bankrupt condi- tion. Said he, "If it would do you any good, colo- nel, I would give you half my present fortune; but my only possessions are a stud horse, who is eating his head off in the stable, and a solitary gamecock, without a hen to lay an egg.^^ The rigidity of Houston's economy is shown by the fact that the payment from the treasury during his three years' term only amounted to |417,175, exclusive of $17,907 paid for the mail service and the collection of taxes. Houston immediately set to work to pacify the In- dians. He sent commissioners to the various tribes with messages of friendship, and to arrange treaties of peace. They were successful in every instance, and although there were occasional troubles, owing to the encroachment of the settlers upon the Indian country and the inevitable conflicts between the hos- tile races, there was no general war with any Indian tribe during the whole of his administration. Indi- vidual hornets were flying about, but the whole nest was not disturbed. Houston addressed the Indians in their own style of language, with which he was familiar, and with a figurative eloquence, which they could appreciate. A number of his Indian "talks," as they were called, have been preserved. This is one of them : — SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 265 Executive Department, Washington, October 13, 1842. To THE Ked Beak and Chiefs of the Council: My Brothers, — The patli between us is open ; it has become white. We wish it to remain open, and that it shall no more be stained with blood. The last Council took brush out of our way. Clouds no longer hang over us, but the sun gives life to our footsteps. Darkness is taken away from us, and we can look at each other as friends. I send councilors with my talk. They will give it to you. Hear it, and remember my words. I have never opened my lips to tell a red brother a lie. My red brethren, who know me, will tell you that my counsel has al- ways been for peace; that I have eaten bread and drank water with the red men. They listened to my words, and were not troubled. A bad chief came in my place, and told them lies, and did them much harm. His counsel was listened to, and the people did evil. His counsel is no more heard, and the peo- ple love peace with their red brothers. You, too, love peace ; and you wish to kill the buffalo for your women and children. There are many in Texas, and we wish you to enjoy them. Your Great Father, and ours, of the United States, wishes the red men and the people of Texas to be brothers. He has written to me and told me that you wanted peace, and would keep it. Because peace was good we have listened to him. You, too, have 266 SAM HOUSTON heard his wishes, and you know the wishes of the red brothers on the Arkansas. Let us be like brothers, and bury the tomahawk forever. Bad men make trouble; they cannot be at peace, but when the water is clear they will disturb it, and make it muddy. The Mexicans have lately come to San Antonio and brought war with them ; they killed some of our people, and we killed and wounded many of them. We drove them out of the country; they fled in sorrow. If they come back again, they shall no more leave our country, or it will be after they have been taken prisoners. Their coming has dis- turbed us, and for that reason I cannot go to the Council to meet you, as I had intended. But my friends that I send to you will tell you all things, and make a treaty with you that I will look upon, and rejoice at. You will counsel together. They will bring me all the words that you speak to them. The Great Spirit will hear the words that I speak to you, and He will know the truth of the words that you send to me. When truth is spoken his countenance will rejoice, but before him who speaketh lies the Great Spirit will place darkness, and will not give light to his going. Let all the red men make peace; let no man injure his brother; let us meet every year in council that we may know the hearts of each other. I wish some of the chiefs of my red brothers to come and see me at Washington. They shall come in peace, and none shall make them afraid. The messenger from the Queen of England and the SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 267 messenger from tlie United States are both in Texas, and will be in Washington, if they are not sick. They will be happy to see my brothers. If the Big Musk is in the Council he has not forgotten my words , and he knows my counsel was always that of a brother; and that I never deceived my red bro- thers, the Cherokees. They had much trouble and sorrow brought upon them, but it was done by chiefs whose counsel was wicked, and I was far off and could not hinder the mischief that was brought upon his people. Our great Council is to meet again in one moon, and I will send a talk to our agent at the trading house, who will send it to my red brothers. Let the war-whoop be no more heard in our prairies. Let songs of joy be heard upon our hills. In our valleys let there be laughter, and in our wig- wams let the voices of our women and children be heard. Let trouble be taken away far from us ; and when our warriors meet together, let them smoke the pipe of peace and be happy. Your brother, Sam Houston. / Santa Anna had taken advantage of the popularity which he had gained by his attack upon the French in Vera Cruz to reorganize his party and depose President Bustamente. The great majority of the people of Mexico were bitterly opposed to the sur- render of Texas, and Santa Anna felt compelled to 268 SAM HOUSTON at least make a pretense of renewing the invasion. A small body of troops under General Yasquez was sent across the Rio Grande, and advanced upon San Antonio, which they reached on March 6, 1842. The small Texan garrison retreated, and the Mexi- cans took possession of the town. They hoisted the Mexican flag on the cathedral, but, after some plun- dering, retreated without attempting to hold the place. Similar raids by small forces were made at the same time upon Refugio and Goliad. These raids caused great excitement among the colonists, and it was apprehended that they were the forerun- ners of a more formidable invasion. The President issued a proclamation calling out the citizens. A force of 200 or 300 quickly gathered at San Antonio under General Burleson, but found that the enemy had retired. General Alexander Somerville was sent to take command of the levies, which soon amounted to about 3500 men. They were eager to pursue the enemy across the Rio Grande, but Houston was soon convinced that the advance of the Mexicans had been merely a temporary raid, and decided against any offensive war. He issued a proclamation forbidding any advance without authority, and, while professedly encouraging the war spirit, took effectual measures to prevent any expedition into Mexico. After some exhibitions of temper and insubordination the troops were disbanded by General Burleson and returned home. The war between Houston and Santa Anna was SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 269 carried on by paper missiles. Santa Anna issued a public letter in reply to a proposition made by Gen- eral Hamilton without authority from the Texan government. General Hamilton had proposed that Mexico should acknowledge the independence of Texas for the payment of $5,000,000, and $200,000 in secret to the agents of the treaty. Santa Anna was justifiably indignant at the proposed attempt at bribery, which he denounced as an insult and an in- famy. He declared that Mexico would never sur- render her right to Texas, and would never desist from war until she "had planted her eagle standard on the banks of the Sabine." Houston replied with a category of Santa Anna's acts of perfidy and false- hood, and a somewhat disingenuous argument of the peaceful character of the Santa Fe expedition. To Santa Anna's threats of the conquest of Texas he re- plied with vigorous emphasis : — "But you declare that you will not relax your ex- ertions until you have subjugated Texas; that you ' have weighed its possible value, ' and that you are perfectly aware of the magnitude of the task which you have undertaken; that you 'will not permit a Colossus within the limits of Mexico ; ' that our title is that of 'theft and usurpation; ' and that 'the honor of the Mexican nation ' demands of you 'the reclama- tion of Texas; ' that 'if it were an unproductive de- sert, useless, sterile, yielding nothing desirable and abounding only in thorns to wound the feet of the traveler, you would not permit it to exist as an inde- 270 SAM HOUSTON pendent government, in derision of your national character, your hearths, and your individuality.' Allow me to assure you that our title to Texas has a high sanction, — that of purchase, because we have performed our conditions; that of conquest, because we have been victorious; it is ours because you can- not subdue us ; it has been consecrated ours by the blood of martyred patriots ; it is ours by the claims of patriotism, superior intelligence, and unsubduable courage. It is not a sterile waste or a desert. It is the home of freemen, it is the land of promise, it is the garden of flowers. Every citizen of Texas was born a freeman, and he would die a recreant to the principles imbibed from his ancestry if he would not freely peril his life in defense of his home, his liberty, and his country." He concluded, "Ere the banner of Mexico shall triumphantly float on the banks of the Sabine, the Texan standard of the single star, borne by the Anglo-Saxon race, shall display its bright folds in Liberty's triumph on the Isthmus of Darien." The war fever continued to rage, and the demand for offensive operations against Mexico was so strong that the President called a special session of Con- gress, which met at Houston on June 27. In his message he alluded to the public threats of Santa Anna, and said that "it was not for us to act on the supposition that they were merely intended to give him temporary popularity at home." He did not be- lieve that a formidable invasion would be attempted. SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 271 but it was evident that the enemy would continue to annoy the frontier. He had heretofore been opposed to offensive measures, but the question was whether they were not now necessary. He left it for Con- gress to decide. The war fever prevailed in Con- gress. It passed an act appointing Houston to the command of the army with dictatorial powers, and appropriating ten millions of acres of the public domain for war purposes. Houston vetoed it in a message declaring that it was contrary to his princi- ples to accept the powers of a military dictator, and that the country had no means whatever for carrying on the war against a powerful nation. It was as- serted by the enemies of Houston that his self-deny- ing declaration was a piece of popular clap-trap, and his whole conduct in the affair a specimen of his "In- dian cunning." They declared that he had consulted with the members of Congress in regard to the details of the bill which he vetoed, and that he had created the demand for the dictatorship in order to refuse it. During the fortnight which passed before the publi- cation of his veto, great turbulence prevailed, and there were threats of violence and assassination. Houston was warned by his friends to have a protect- ing guard, but his house was open as usual, and the voice of his young wife could be heard at the piano in the evening through the open windows, while knots of desperate men were gathered to curse and threaten him. Whether Houston played a political trick in regard to the dictatorship or not, he undoubtedly 272 SAM HOUSTON showed great practical sagacity in refusing to allow the country to undertake the invasion of Mexico without means, and with only an undisciplined army of volunteers. In March, 1842, Houston proclaimed a blockade of the Mexican coast. The Mexican navy had been destroyed in the harbor of Vera Cruz by the French fleet, and the Texan vessels could command the Gulf. They had been cruising off the coast of Yucatan with- out accomplishing anything for themselves or the insurgents. The insurgent government of Yucatan had agreed to pay their expenses, but nothing was received from it. The crews were unpaid and the vessels out of repair when they returned from their cruise. They were sent to New Orleans to refit, but there was no money to pay the bills, and the vessels were given in pawn as security. Houston sent orders to Commodore Moore to sail for Galveston, but he refused to do so until the debts, for which he had given his personal pledge were paid. At a secret session of Congress in January, 1843, it was decided to sell the vessels, and commissioners were sent to take possession of them. The commodore refused to deliver them up, and sailed for Campeachy on an appeal for aid, and the promise of a subsidy by the Yucatan government, which was being besieged in that place. Houston issued a proclamation declaring Moore's operations to be piratical, and requesting foreign navies to seize the vessels and deliver them up. Moore succeeded in relieving the siege of Cam- SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 273 peachy by driving the Mexican vessels from the harbor and cannonading the land batteries. He returned to Galveston, and a paper war ensued be- tween him and the President. The people of Gal- veston were indignant at the action of Congress in ordering the sale of the navy, and the act was re- pealed. The vessels were laid up, and remained useless until they were turned over to the United States, after annexation. The whole conduct of the navy, like that of the army, showed the utter want of subordination which existed among the volunteer adventurers, and the difficulty which Houston had in maintaining any regulation or authority. During the excitement of the apprehended inva- sion, Houston, who had been opposed to the change of the capitol to Austin, removed the government to Houston, and afterward to the town of Washington on the Brazos. This excited great indignation among the citizens of Austin, and they refused to permit the removal of the archives. Houston sent messengers for them, but the citizens shaved the manes and tails of their horses, and drove them off with contumely. On the 20th of December, 1842, Houston disj)atched a company of armed men with wagons to bring off the archives by force. As they were loading the boxes into the wagons at the Land Office, the citizens gathered, and a cannon was trained on the building. It was touched off by a Mrs. Eberly, the Amazonian keeper of a hotel in the town, but, fortunately, no one was injured by the discharge. The company 274 SAM HOUSTON started with their wagons, but were overtaken and surrounded by the citizens at their camp at Brushy Creek, about eighteen miles from Austin. The com- pany was compelled to surrender and haul the boxes back to Austin. Houston complained to Congress of this insubordination, but nothing was done about it, and the boxes remained at Austin. Disturbances broke out in 1842 on the old "neu- tral ground" in Eastern Texas among the settlers themselves. A strong element of desperadoes and criminals remained among the people. Forged land titles and squatters' claims furnished the cause of the disturbance. The courts were powerless to enforce claims under the laws, and the citizens formed them- selves into a band, calling themselves the "Regula- tors," to carry out their own ideas of justice by the bullet and the lash. The opposite party organized under the name of the "Moderators," and the whole section was involved in a bitter and vindictive neigh- borhood war. Appeals were made by the peaceable citizens to Houston to suppress it. He ordered out a force of militia under General Smith, who marched to Shelby County, and found the two parties drawn up in battle array. He persuaded them to disperse without fighting, and the troubles were quieted in a measure. But the private warfare lasted for some years, and the squatters contintied to hold their lands by the title of the rifle. In September, 1843, the Mexicans made a more serious raid across the Rio Grande. General Adrian SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 275 WoU entered San Antonio with a force of 1200 men. It was a surprise, and the Mexicans took the mem- bers of the district court prisoners. The militia ral- lied at Gonzales under the command of Captain Mat- thew Caldwell, known as "Old Paint," and advanced to attack the Mexicans with about eighty men. Cap- tain John C. Hays, the famous Texan Banger, was sent forward with a small party to draw a sally from the town. General WoU came out with 200 cavalry and 600 infantry, and a battle took place on the Salado Creek. It lasted until sunset, when the Mexicans retreated into the town. A party of fifty Texans, under Captain Nicholas Dawson, in attempt- ing to join Caldwell, were surrounded on the prairie by the Mexicans, who kept out of the range of their rifles, but fired upon them with a cannon, until they were compelled to surrender. The prisoners were all butchered after their surrender, and only one of the party succeeded in making his escape by killing a cavalry man with his own lance, and dashing off on his horse. General WoU retired from San Antonio on the 18th, taking with him his prisoners and plun- der. He was pursued by Caldwell, whose force had increased to 400 or 500 men, but the report of a rein- forcement to WoU, under General Ampudia, pre- vented Caldwell from attacking him. This raid again renewed the excitement and the demand for offensive operations against Mexico. Houston was once more compelled to cater to the war spirit. He issued a proclamation on September 16, 276 SAM HOUSTON announcing that tlie Texan troops would cross the Rio Grande, and calling upon the levies to muster at San Antonio. General Somerville was again given the command, probably with secret instructions not to attempt any serious invasion. Troops gathered at San Antonio in an ill- supplied and insubordinate con- dition, and after several weeks of waiting a consid- erable number of them went home. On November 18, Somerville set out on his march with 750 men, and reached Laredo December 6. He moved down the river, instead of crossing it. His troops were convinced that he had no serious purpose, and became insubordinate. About 200 left him and returned home. Somerville crossed the river with the rest, and took possession of Guerrero. From that place he recrossed the river and informed his army that he intended to return to Gonzales. About 800 men re- fused to return. They elected Colonel William S. Fisher as their commander, and determined to invade Mexico on their own account. They made an attack on the town of Mier on the night of the 23d, and entered it. During the engagement for the posses- sion of the town the next day the Texans were per- suaded to surrender by false representations of the arrival of Mexican reinforcements, and on the promise that they should not be sent into Mexico. The promise was violated, and they were marched as pris- oners toward the City of Mexico. They rose on their guards at the Hacienda del Salado, about eighteen miles beyond Saltillo, and made their escape. Un- SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 211 fortunately, they deserted tlie road and took refuge in tlie mountains, where they lost their way and were worn out by hardships and want of food. They were tracked down by parties of the soldiery, and all but four recaptured. Every tenth man of the prisoners was shot by order of Santa Anna for their attempt to escape, and Captain Ewan Cameron, the leader of the revolt, who had escaped drawing the black bean in the death lottery, was afterward ordered to be shot. The prisoners were confined in the fortress of Perote near Jalapa. General Thomas Jefferson Green and a few others escaped by tunneling through the wall, and the rest were eventually released at the interposition of the foreign ministers. A sort of predatory expedition took place the same year. It was an attempt to capture a train loaded with Mexican goods on its way from Independence, Missouri, to Santa Fe. Captain Jacob S. Snively started in the fall of 1843 with about 150 men to capture the train in the region south of the Arkansas, which was claimed to be Texas territory. The train was escorted by a force of United States cavalry, under the command of Colonel Philip St. George Cooke, who obtained information of Snively's design. He informed Snively that he was trespassing on the territory of the United States, and compelled him to surrender. His party was partially disarmed and rendered harmless for mischief. A part accompanied Cooke's cavalry to Independence and a part returned home, having suffered somewhat in skirmishes with 278 SAM HOUSTON the Indians on the way. It was an error on the part of Houston to have authorized such an expedition. On October 13, 1842, President Houston sent a dignified and forcible appeal to the governments of the United States, Great Britain, and France to in- terpose with Mexico, and require that either she should recognize the independence of Texas, or make war upon her in a civilized manner. He pointed out that no serious attempt at invasion had been made for the past six years, and that the war had only been carried on by predatory raids and by inciting the In- dians to massacre. He said : — "If Mexico believes herself able to subjugate this country, her right to make the effort to do so is not denied, for, on the contrary, if she chooses to invade our territory for that purpose the President, in the name of the people of all Texas, will bid her wel- come. It is not against a war with Mexico that Texas would protest. This she deprecates not. She is willing at any time to stake her existence as a na- tion upon the issue of a war conducted on Christian principles. It is alone against the unholy, inhuman, and fruitless character it has assumed and still main- tains, which violates every rule of honorable warfare, every precept of religion, and sets at defiance even the common sentiments of humanity, against which she protests, and invokes the interposition of those powerful nations which have recognized her indepen- dence." This appeal received the approval of Sir Kobert SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 279 Peel and M. Guizot. Lord Aberdeen, the British Minister of Foreign Affairs, offered to mediate with Mexico for a cessation of hostilities, but declined to act jointly with the United States, on the ground that the latter 's relations with Mexico were not suffi- ciently friendly to justify expectations of any good results from her interference. Under the convention arranged by General Hamilton, the British minister to Mexico had been instructed to proffer a mediation which had been categorically refused by the Mexican government. This offer was now renewed, but with no better apparent success. In the mean time, the efforts for annexation had been revived in the United States. On June 6, 1843, President Houston sent a dispatch to Minister Van Zandt at Washington, directing him to withdraw the application of Texas for annexation to the United States. In further dis- patches, which were doubtless intended to be shown to the members of the United States government and to leading men in Congress, he communicated the facts of the friendly proffers made by European governments, and intimated that by an alliance with them Texas would be relieved from the necessity of desiring annexation to the United States. President Tyler was strongly in favor of annexation, and opened negotiations with Houston to induce him to renew the application. The Mexican minister to the United States announced in August that any act of annexa- tion by Congress would be considered a declaration of war. Houston demanded to know if the United 280 SAM HOUSTON States could be depended upon to protect Texas from invasion while the negotiations were going on. Sec- retary Upshur did not answer this question, but stated that the Senate had been canvassed, and that there was an assurance of the necessary two thirds who would vote to ratify the treaty. Houston then applied to Colonel William S. Murphy, the United States diplomatic agent in Texas, and was assured that the United States would not permit the interfer- ence of Mexico or any other power while the negotia- tions were pending. Houston accepted this as suffi- cient, and appointed J. Pinkney Henderson as a special commissioner to Washington to renew the application for the treaty. He also sent a secret message to the Texan Congress, informing it of what he had done, and requesting its approval. During these negotiations Houston wrote several important letters, doubtless intended to affect 23ublic sentiment in the United States. On February 16, 1844, he wrote to Jackson, pointing out the advantages in trade and security which Texas would secure by maintaining her independence, but declaring himself in favor of annexation. His desire for peace and a settled order outweighed all other considerations. He said : — "I have no desire to see war renewed again in Texas. It is not the apprehension of personal danger that would alarm me, but rather the deleterious in- fluence which it has upon our population. The revo- lution has already introduced into Texas more wicked SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 281 and ambitious men than could be desired in our pres- ent condition. In armies and camps such men have an opportunity of extending their acquaintance, and deriving some prominence from associations which totally disqualifies them from usefulness in a peace- ful community. Unwilling to embark in the useful avocations of life, in many instances they become restless demagogues or useless loafers. They are either ready to consume the substance which they have not earned, or to form combinations unfavorable to good order and the administration of the laws. Peace in Texas would relieve us from such people, and in the absence of their baleful influence give to society a vigorous constitution and healthy complex- ion. All the evils which we have experienced have resulted from such characters, and unless we have peace permanently established among us we cannot tell when a September election might not submerge the country to the misrule of such men for three years. "Furthermore, I wish to reside in a land where all will be subordinate to law, and where none dare to defy its mandates. I have arrived at that period of life when I desire retirement and assurance that what- ever I possess will be secured to me by just laws wisely administered. That privilege I would deem a rich requital for whatever I may have performed use- ful in life. With it I would be happy to retire from all cares of public station, and live in the enjoyment of the reflection that, if I had been serviceable to any 282 SAM HOUSTON portion of mankind, their prosperity and happiness were ample recompense. I would give no thought to what the world might say of me when I could trans- mit to posterity the reputation of an honest man." In conclusion he said : — "Now, my venerated friend, you will perceive that Texas is presented to the United States as a bride adorned for her espousal. But if, now so confident of the union, she should be rejected, her mortification would be indescribable. She has been sought by the United States, and this is the third time she has con- sented. Were she now to be spurned it would for- ever terminate expectation on her part, and it would then not only be left for the United States to expect that she would seek some other friend, but all Chris- tendom would justify her in a choice dictated by ne- cessity and sanctioned by wisdom. However adverse this might be to the wishes or the interest of the United States, in her present situation she could not ponder long. The course of the United States, if it stop short of annexation, will displease France, irri- tate England, and exasperate Mexico. An effort to postpone it to a more convenient season may be tried in the United States to subserve party purposes and make a President. Let them beware. I take it that it is of too great magnitude for any imj)ediment to be opposed to its execution. That you may live to see your hopes in relation to it crowned with complete success, I sincerely desire. In the event that it speedily takes place, I hope that it will afford me an SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 283 opportunity of again visiting you at the Hermitage with my family. It is our ardent desire to see the day when you can lay your hand on our little boy's head, and bestow upon him your benediction." In May, he wrote to Minister Murphy a letter, which shows his enlarged views of the future of Texas as an independent power, and of the possibilities of the creation of a great and rival empire in the West. It was not a wild and extravagant vision, and might have been accomplished but for the annexation of Texas and the subsequent acquisition of California by the United States. He said : — "If faction or a regard for present party advan- tages should defeat the measure, you may depend upon one thing, and that is, that the glory of the United States has already culminated. A rival power will soon be built up, and the Pacific, as well as the Atlantic, will be component parts of Texas in thirty years from this date. The Oregon region in geographical affinity will attach to Texas. By this coalition or union the barrier of the Rocky Moun- tains will be dispensed with or obviated. England and France in such an event would not be so tena- cious on the subject of Oregon as if the United States were to be the sole possessor of it. When such an event would take place, or in anticipation of such a result, all the powers which either envy or fear the United States would use all reasonable exer- tion to build us up as the only rival power which can ever exist on this continent to that of the United 284 SAM HOUSTON States. Considering our origin, their speculation may seem chimerical and that such things cannot take place. A common origin has its influence so long as common interests exist, but no longer. . . . The union of Oregon and Texas will be much more natural and convenient than for either separately to belong to the United States. This, too, would place Mexico at the mercy of such a power as Oregon and Texas would form ; such an event may appear fanci- ful to many, but I assure you that there are no Rocky Mountains interposing to such a project. But one thing can prevent its accomplishment, and that is annexation. If you, or any statesman, will only regard the map of North America, you will perceive that from the forty-sixth degree of latitude north there is the commencement of a natural boundary. This will embrace Oregon, and from thence south, on the Pacific coast, to the twenty-ninth or thirtieth de- gree south latitude will be a natural and convenient extent of sea-land. I am free to admit that most of the province of Chihuahua, Sonora, and Upper and Lower California, as well as Santa Fe, which we now claim, will have to be brought into the connection with Texas and Oregon. This, you will see by ref- erence to the map, is no bugbear to those who will reflect upon the achievement of the Anglo-Saxon people. . . . You need not estimate the population which is said or reputed to occupy the vast territory embraced between the twenty-ninth and forty-sixth degrees of latitude on the Pacific. They will, like ANNEXATION 285 the Indian race, yield to the advance of the North American population. The amalgamation, under the advisement of statesmen, cannot fail to produce the result in producing a united government formed of and embracing the limits suggested. It may be urged that these matters are remote. Be it so. Statesmen are intended by their forecast to regulate and arrange matters in such sort as will give direction to events by which the future is to be benefited or prejudiced. You may fully rely, my friend, that future ages will profit by these facts, while we will only contemplate them in prospective. They must come. It is impossible to look on the map of North America and not perceive the rationale of the pro- ject." Before Jackson had received Houston's letter he had written on February 13 a letter expressing his strong desire for the annexation of Texas. It was kept secret for political reasons by the Democratic conspirators, headed by Calhoun, who were op23osed to the nomination of Van Buren. It was believed that both Van Buren and Clay had come to an under- standing by which they hoped to eliminate the Texas question from the coming election, in which they expected to be the candidates of their respective par- ties. The question had excited a bitter controversy, and each one feared that it would cost him vital votes. Clay wrote a letter, April 11, in which he declared that the annexation of Texas would be cer- tain to bring on a war with Mexico, and endanger 286 SAM HOUSTON the safety of the Union. Van Buren also published a letter expressing his belief that the annexation of Texas would be followed by a war with Mexico, and that in such an event the United States would not be justified in the eyes of the world. The treaty was submitted to the Senate with a message from Presi- dent Tyler advocating what he termed the re-annexa- tion of Texas. The controversy raged in the country and in Congress, but the influence of these two great leaders upon their respective parties was sufficient to secure rejection. The treaty was rejected on June 5 by a vote of thirty -five to sixteen. As soon as the treaty was definitely rejected by the United States the British government acted. Lord Aberdeen proposed to Ashbell Smith, the Texan minister to Great Britain and France, a "diplomatic act" in which five powers. Great Britain, France, the United States, Texas, and Mexico should be in- vited to join. Its purpose was to secure peace be- tween Texas and Mexico and the permanent inde- pendence of the former, Texas giving a formal pledge not to unite with any other nation. France agreed to join with Great Britain in the "act," and the three powers were to compel the assent of Mexico. The refusal of the United States was expected. Houston, who had been absent from the seat of government for some time, sent instructions to Anson Jones, Secre- tary of State, to close with the offer of Great Britain and France. Jones, who was then President-elect, disobeyed the order, and, instead, sent leave of ab- ANNEXATION 287 sence to Minister Smith. Why Houston permitted this is an unsolved problem, but it is possible that he was willing that Jones, who was then his friend and a political protege, should have the distinction of concluding the treaty. At that time Houston and Jones were both regarded as opposed to annexation, and the majority of the people of Texas agreed with them, considering that the action of the United States had rendered it hopeless. In the mean time independent negotiations had been going on for an armistice and a treaty of peace with Mexico. The ex-provisional Lieutenant-Governor, J. W. Robinson, who had been among the prisoners captured at San Antonio by General Woll, had ad- dressed a communication to Santa Anna from the prison of Perote, proposing, if he was released, to go to Texas, and arrange the terms of a treaty by which Texas would acknowledge the sovereignty of Mexico, on condition that she should have a separate govern- ment. The proposition, which was probably made for no other purpose than to secure his own release, was accepted. Santa Anna's communication, which was addressed to "Mr." Houston and claimed Texas to be a province of Mexico, was of course rejected. But in it Mexico had expressed a willingness to suspend hostilities. An armistice was agreed upon throuo'h the mediation of the British minister, and commissioners were appointed on the part of Presi- dent Houston and General Woll, to arrange for an exchange of prisoners, pending negotiations for a per- 288 SAM HOUSTON mauent peace. They agreed upon the terms of an armistice to last until May 1, and the agreement was signed on February 15. It was rejected by Houston on the ground that it referred to Texas as a province of Mexico. No acts of hostility followed, although General WoU notified Houston that the war was re- newed. Jones was inaugurated President on the 1st of De- cember, 1844. In his last message to Congress Hous- ton had the pleasure of announcing that his measures of economy had resulted in the solvency of the trea- sury. The expenses of the government had been met. The total cost of his administration during the three years had been only $416,058, and there was a bal- ance in the treasury of $5058. The Exchequer bills, with some fluctuations, had appreciated nearly to par, and the revenues of the country were on a sound and stable basis. Of all Houston's services to Texas none was more important than his firm and judicious economy, and its rescue from the danger of the abso- lute collapse of the government from the extravagance and wild financial schemes of the preceding adminis- tration. In his valedictory address he said in regard to annexation, "The United States have spurned Texas twice already. Let her therefore firmly main- tain her position as it is, and work out her own politi- cal salvation. Let her legislation proceed upon the principle that we are to be and to remain an inde- pendent people. If Texas goes begging again for admission to the United States, she will only de- ANNEXATION 289 grade herself. . . . If we remain an independent na- tion our territory will become extensive — unlimited." The knowledge of the "diplomatic act" and the apprehension that Texas would be bound to Great Britain and France by their guarantee of her in- dependence aroused the alarm and jealousy of the United States. Public sentiment turned decidedly in favor of annexation. Van Bur en was defeated in the Democratic Convention, and James K. Polk was nominated as an avowed advocate of annexation. Clay endeavored to satisfy public opinion by declar- ing that he was in favor of annexation if it could be accomplished without war, but Polk was elected by a small majority in the Electoral College. On Feb- ruary 14, a joint resolution was adopted by both Houses of Congress for the admission of Texas into the Union. President Herrera, of Mexico, who had been elected by the Liberal party, agreed to a treaty by which Mexico consented to acknowledge the inde- pendence of Texas, on condition that she would not become annexed to any other power. The United States government became exceedingly anxious. Special agents were sent to make all sorts of promises to the people, and the old war feeling was stirred up by intimations of aggressive movements against Mex- ico. Lamar, and the other ambitious leaders who had been opposed to annexation, now strongly favored it, and it was even proposed to overthrow the govern- ment on the ground of President Jones's supposed opposition to the measure. Houston, who was a / 290 SAM HOUSTON friend of Jones, although they afterward quarreled bitterly, lent his strong personal influence to the sup- port of the government. The proposition of Presi- dent Herrera was made known to the people by proc- lamation, and a convention was also called to take action on the invitation of the United States. It met in Austin on the 4th of July, 1845, and adopted a resolution for annexation, which was submitted to Congress for ratification. It was accepted with only one dissentient vote, that of Richard Bache, a grand- son of Benjamin Franklin. The convention framed a state constitution, which was accepted by the peo- ple at a general election. October 14, Texas ceased to be a Republic, and became one of the United States. Some question has been raised as to the sincerity of Houston's desire for annexation. At the time he was accused of having been bought by British gold, and he was charged with treason with all the bitter- ness of envenomed political animosity. There is no reasonable doubt that Houston went to Texas for the purpose of bisinging about its acquisition by the United States, and with the knowledge and support of Jackson. During the early years of the struggle for independence annexation to the United States would have settled the question in favor of Texas, and was ardently desired by every man in it except those who were blinded by wild schemes of ambition and im- possible conquest. Houston was too shrewd and sen- sible not to recognize its advantages. Nevertheless, ANNEXATION 291 he was revolted by the opposition of a considerable portion of the people of the United States, and by the repeated refusals of its government. He came to see the possibilities of a western empire to be founded by and attached to Texas, and recognized that the time had come when the United States must make a definite choice. His patriotism and his pride would not submit to further national humiliation. Ashbell Smith, Secretary of State to President Jones, relates this incident of Houston while the last negotiations were pending, and before Congress had passed the resolution for annexation : — "He was leaving Washington on the Brazos one morning in February, 1845. He came into my room, booted, spurred, whip in hand. Said he, 'Saxe Weimar [the name of his saddle-horse] is at the door, saddled. I have come to leave Houston's last words with you. If the Congress of the United States shall not by the 4th of March pass some mea- sure of annexation that Texas can with honor accede to, Houston will take the stump against annexation for all time to come. ' When he wished to be em- phatic he spoke of himself by name, Houston, in the third person. Without another word, embracing after his fashion, he mounted his horse and left." So far as Houston's personal ambition was con- cerned, it undoubtedly would have been favored by annexation. He was debarred from being again President of the Republic by the constitutional lim- itation. He would naturally and inevitably be one 292 SAM HOUSTON of the Senators of the new State in Congress, with a fresh career open before him and the possibility of a still wider ambition in the Presidency of the United States. He was prepared to sacrifice this rather than endure another national affront, but he was undoubt- edly rejoiced when annexation was accomplished on honorable terms. In his private life during his second term Houston was enabled to establish a home and abandon some of his manners of a reckless and freebooting frontiers- man, as under the influence of his wife he had re- formed his habits of drinking and swearing. He still lived, however, in a primitive fashion. One of the old settlers of Texas thus relates his first inter- view with him: "I had come to Texas from Alabama, and was at Washington on the Brazos, then the seat of government, in 1843. One morning I was ap- proached by Houston's negro boy Tom, who was his cook and body-servant, with an invitation from the President for me to dine with him that day. I was then only about twenty years of age, and was natu- rally a good deal flustered by the unexpected honor, which I was unable to account for, as I had never spoken to the President. The dinner was at one o'clock. I found the President at the double log- house which was his residence. He received me with a kindly and hearty welcome, which put me at once at my ease. The dinner consisted of wild turkey, bread, and black coffee. Houston said that but for the kindness of a neighbor, who had sent in the ANNEXATION 293 bird, the dinner would have consisted of only bread and coffee. He told me all about my family and relatives in Tennessee, and in fact a great many things that I did not know myself. His whole man- ner and conversation were most gracious and friendly. From that time I was always his devoted friend and political follower." It was Houston's custom to ac- quaint himseK with the antecedents of new-comers to Texas as far as he could, and attach them to himseK by friendly interest and hospitality. If, however, they showed signs of rivalry or opposition to him, he was apt to turn his tongue against them, and be as harsh and sarcastic as he had before been friendly. Mrs. M. H. Houston, a Scotch lady of wealth who made a cruise in the Gulf of Mexico with her hus- band in a yacht, and wrote a couple of books about her travels in the United States, thus describes a visit to Houston in 1844 : — "The city of Houston is beautifully situated on the banks of the Red River. The houses are built entirely of wood, and the hotels are wretched. Our chief end, however, was answered, for we received a visit from the conqueror of San Jacinto and the friend of the red man. As is invariably the case in the introduction of Americans, either to one another, or to foreigners, much shaking of hands, together with considerable use of the monosyllable 'sir,' took place between us and General Sam Houston, whose costume is a happy mixture of the inevitable black satin waistcoat (donned probably from a sense of con- V 294 SAM HOUSTON ventional respect for his British visitors) and a coarse, blanket-like overcoat, which, having much the appear- ance of green baize, is the ordinary covering of a Texan gentleman. A wan and worn-looking man is the President of the new Republic, and there are, notwithstanding the shrewd and kindly expression of his face, signs thereon that he has (more than his many admirers like to think possible) deserved in his day the sobriquet of 'Drunken Sam,' which was long since bestowed upon him. He has been twice mar- ried, having obtained — a thing easily done in Amer- ica — a divorce from his first wife ; his second mar- riage has, in one respect at least, proved of signal advantage to him, for, thanks to the influence of Madame la JPresidente, General Houston has es- chewed the habits of drinking and using bad lan- guage, in which he formerly indulged. He was what I have heard called 'a fine swearer ' in days gone by; but he has learned not only to govern men, but to rule his tongue, which he has probably found to be a far more difficult matter. Like most Americans whom I have known, he is very proud of being able to clearly prove his descent from an English, or rather, in his case, from a Scotch family. He told us that his forbears belonged in Lanarkshire, and claimed cousinship with us at once. Never have I seen a man who had 'done,' not alone the 'State,' but the cause of humanity, such 'good service in his day ' who was so simple and unobtrusive in his man- ner, and who seemed to think so little of himself." ANNEXATION 295 Houston endeavored to fulfill his purpose to visit Jackson at the Hermitage with his family, after annexation, but he only arrived a few hours after the death of his "venerated friend," whom he held in such affection and reverence. CHAPTER XIV. SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES Samuel Houston and Thomas J. Rusk were elected Senators of the United States by the legis- lature of Texas. Houston arrived in Washington and took his seat as a member of the Twenty-Ninth Congress March 30, 1846. It was the great era of the American Senate. It had among its members a larger number of distinguished and able statesmen than it had before or has had since. There were the great leaders, Webster, Clay, and Calhoun, the scarcely less distinguished Thomas H. Benton, and among the others, who had or were to, acquire a na- tional fame, were Lewis Cass, John A. Dix, Daniel S. Dickenson, Reverdy Johnson, Simon Cameron, Will- iam Allen, Thomas Corwin, and Jesse D. Bright. Houston's advent, from his romantic career and achievements, attracted much attention, and he was at once a marked, although a rather eccentric figure in the Senate chamber. He continued his habit of peculiarity in dress, wearing his broad-brimmed white hat of soft fur, and draping himself in a cloak with a red lining, or in a bright-colored Mexican blanket. He provided himself with a supply of cypress shin- gles, and filled his waste-basket during the debates SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 297 with the shavings that curled from under his sharp knife. Houston did not manifest any of that false mod- esty which has created the custom that a new Senator shall be silent during his first session, but at once took his part in the debates. His first speech was delivered just a fortnight after he had taken his seat. It was on the question of the Oregon boundary. He took strong grounds, in agreement with Benton, with whom he allied himself, as the representative of the old Union Democracy of Jackson, and in opposition to Calhoun and the nuUifiers and disunionists, in favor of the extreme claims of the United States to the northern boundary. His speech was long, ram- ^^ bling, and discursive, and, if at times forcible in lan- guage, indicated that he was not likely to take his place among the leaders of the Senate in logical and legal argument. The Southern members, under the leadership of Calhoun, were not anxious for the ex- tension of free territory at the North, and President Polk, although he had been elected on the plat- form of "54.40 or fight," was of a much less bel- licose temper toward Great Britain than he had been toward Mexico. The motion for which Houston spoke, to give notice of the termination of the joint occupancy of the Columbia River region, was passed by a vote of forty to fourteen, but the question was finally settled, after some not very forcible diplomacy on the part of the United States, by a compromise on the boundary of 49°. 298 SAM HOUSTON The war with Mexico had been begun before Hous- ton's arrival by the advance of General Taylor's troops upon the Eio Grande, Houston favored the war, at least after it had been commenced, and had always extreme views in regard to the incorporation of Mexican territory into the United States. He was a member of the Committee on Military Affairs, and was, naturally, a good deal consulted in regard to the operations against Mexico. It is charged that he prevented the appointment of General Albert Sidney Johnston to an important command, on account of their old differences in the affairs of Texas, and he doubtless had virtual control of the commissions issued to Texan officers. He reported a resolution for a vote of thanks to the soldiers engaged in the battle of Buena Vista, and for a medal to General Taylor. He was in favor of the vigorous prosecution of the war, and in the Thirtieth Congress supported the bill for the three millions extra credit to carry it on, which was defeated. He made an elaborate speech, in which he defended the character of the settlers in Texas, who had been attacked during the debate, and set forth the claims of Texas to the terri- tory of New Mexico, east of the Rio Grande, under the old Spanish and French treaties. He defended President Polk from the charge of having brought on the war, and argued in favor of giving him a vigorous support. He was strenuous in the advocacy of the claims of Texas, and made a strong speech in favor of incorporating the Texan navy into that of the SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 299 United States, about whicli there had been some diffi- culty, which was finally settled by an appropriation for the pay of the Texan officers for four years, on the condition that they would relinquish their claims to positions in the navy of the United States. He offered a resolution for the establishment of a protec- torate over Yucatan, as he did at a later period one for a protectorate over all Mexico. It was in accord- ance with his views for the extension of the terri- tory of the United States to the Isthmus of Darien, but it fortunately received little attention. What- ever may be the opinion in regard to "manifest des- tiny," the adoption of such a scheme at that time would have involved the United States in difficulties and responsibilities of the most serious character, and have been a source of great trouble and weakness. These views did not accord with the usual practical sagacity of Houston, but rather with the filibuster spirit of the earlier adventurers in Texas, whom he had always opposed. Houston's most important action and speech, which fixed the plan in relation to the extension of slavery that he ever afterward maintained, were on the bill for the establishment of the territorial government of Oregon. The bill contained a provision prohibit- ing the establishment of slavery, in accordance with the ordinance of 1787 in regard to the Northwest Territory. This was denounced by Callioun, who de- clared that Congress had no right to prohibit slavery in a Territory, and openly threatened disunion in 300 SAM HOUSTON case his doctrine was not accepted. Houston followed Benton in a vigorous reply. He said that he had heard the cry of disunion and nullification before. That cry had reached him in the wilderness when an exile from kindred and friends and sections. But it had rung in his ears, and wounded his heart. Now, however, he was in the midst of such a cry, and he was bound to act as a man conscious of the solemn responsibility imposed upon him. He had heard the menaces and threats of dissolution and dis- union until he had become familiar with them, and they had now ceased to produce alarm in his bosom. He had no fear of the dissolution of the Union, when he recollected how it had been established and how it had been defended. Mr. Calhoun and Mr. Butler, of South Carolina, both interrupted Houston's speech. Calhoun denied that the South had threatened to dissolve the Union. Mr. Butler wanted to know if the holding of a Southern convention was treason. Houston replied, "Certainly not." The South could hold all the conventions it pleased, but he would never go into one. He knew neither North nor South. He knew only the Union. Houston's course produced great anger and excitement among the ex- treme Southerners. He and Benton were denounced by name as traitors at public meetings in South Caro- lina. But there appears to have been no disapproval of his action at that time among the people of Texas. The large slave-holding element had not become es- tablished among the settlers, and they were fresh in SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 301 their loyalty to the Union. It was not until the social and political conditions had been changed that the fire-eaters and disunionists gained the control. In the next Congress in 1849, under the adminis- tration of President Taylor, Houston declared him- self in favor of the admission of California as a free State. The Southern leaders were greatly excited at the prospect of the loss of the territory for which they had caused the Mexican war. An address was issued for a convention at Nashville to consider the threatened rights and interests of the South. Hous- ton refused to sign the address, and ridiculed the convention. He declared that it was a piece of ridic- ulous flummery, and that ex-Governor Henderson was the sole representative from Texas in it, and " self -constituted at that." The slavery question was continually coming up in every form. On a resolu- tion to invite Father Mathew, the eminent Irish apostle of temperance, to a seat on the floor of the Senate, objection was made that he had signed a petition against slavery with Daniel O'Connell. Houston supported the resolution, and expressed his profound contempt for the attempt to drag slavery into the question of temperance. At that time Hous- ton had wholly conquered his habits of indulgence in liquor. He said, "I am a disciple of the advocates of temperance. I needed the discipline of reforma- tion, and I embraced it. I am proud on this floor to proclaim it, sir. I would enforce the example upon every American heart that influences or is influenced 302 SAM HOUSTON by filial affection, conjugal love, or parental tender- ness." The question of the extent of the boundary of Texas to the north on the Rio Grande, and the claim of the State to a considerable portion of the territory of New Mexico, was renewed by the result of the Mexican war. The United States troops under Gen- eral Kearney had taken possession of New Mexico, and, after the territory had been ceded to the United States by the treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo, Texas attempted to exercise jurisdiction over it. The leg- islature passed an ordinance making it a judicial dis- trict, and Judge Beard was sent to hold courts in the territory. By order of President Taylor, Colonel Monroe, the commandant of the United States troops, forbade Judge Beard to exercise his functions, and ordered an election for a territorial delegate to Con- gress. Houston defended the claim of Texas in an elaborate speech, and attacked Taylor for his uncom- plimentary references in his reports to the disorders among the Texan volunteers during the Mexican war. The question at one time assumed a somewhat serious phase, as Governor Wood threatened to call out the militia of Texas to take possession of the country. But he thought better of it when he was informed by President Taylor that they would be repelled by force, and that he would go to the scene of distur- bance himself, if necessary. Mr. Clay in his famous compromise measures included a provision for the settlement of the claim of Texas to New Mexico by SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 303 the payment of a sum of money for the canceling of the debts of Texas, for which the customs revenues had been pledged. In order to avoid a continuance of the trouble this portion of the compromise measure was adopted first. Senator Pearce, of Maryland, in- troduced a bill fixing the boundaries of Texas and New Mexico, as they now stand, and providing for the payment of 110,000,000 to Texas. Of this sum $5,000,000 was to be reserved for the payment of the debts of Texas upon claims filed and audited in the United States treasury. There was a strong disposi- tion in the Texas legislature to reject the proposition, on the ground of the provision compelling the pay- ment of the public debt contracted by the Kepublic. In the final disposition a portion of this was repu- diated. The public debt, which amounted to 112,- 436,491, was scaled down to $6,827,278, by various classifications allowing from twenty to seventy-five cents on the dollar. It was claimed that this was a just and even a generous adjustment, inasmuch as the money had been received in some instances at only two or three cents on the dollar, and there was the usual talk about speculators and Shylocks, who had taken advantage of the necessities of the deserving creditors to obtain possession of the claims. It must be admitted that the ostensible claims for a reduction of the debt on account of the actual value received were very forcible, and the example of Texas will com- pare favorably with that of the United States after the Revolutionary war, and of States like Mississippi and 304 SAM HOUSTON Pennsylvania with much less temptation. Neverthe- less, it was a violation of the bond, which would not have been permitted on the part of any private debtor, and not justifiable according to the strict letter of the law. Houston defended the action of Texas in scaling the debt in a speech in the Senate. In regard to the relinquishment by Texas to the claim upon New Mexico, he said in a speech at Galveston that "it was the best sale ever made of land of a worthless quality and a disputable title." At Houston's sug- gestion the sum of 12,000,000 of the money, remain- ing after the payment of the debt, was set apart for a public school fund. As the controversy raged and the excitement grew hot over Clay's compromise bill, Houston offered a resolution that a committee of six Senators be ap- pointed to prepare an address for the purpose of allaying the agitation, but it was not adopted. The various measures embodied in the original bill, for the admission of California as a free State, for the creation of a territorial government in New Mexico without reference to slavery, for the settlement of the Texan boundary, for a fugitive slave law, and for the abolition of the slave trade in the District of Colum- bia, were finally adopted, one after another. The fugitive slave law, in a more severe form as regards the rights of the fugitives before the courts than as reported by Mr. Clay, and a gross violation of com- mon law, was passed August 26, only twelve Senators voting against it. Houston voted for it, as he did SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 305 also for the abolition of the slave trade in the District of Columbia. Although ten Senators from Southern States signed a protest against the admission of Cali- fornia as a free State "as a part of a policy which, if persisted in, would lead to a dissolution of the Con- federacy," and there were ominous signs of a growing spirit of slave propagandism and resistance to na- tional authority at the South, the country believed that the terrible question had been charmed down for an indefinite period. But the inevitable conflict had hardly been postponed. A new class of states- men had come upon the scene, more far-seeing in regard to the nature of the controversy, and more determined to bring it to a decisive issue. Seward, Sumner, and Chase represented the more decided re- sistance of the North against the spread of slavery, and Jefferson Davis, Clemens, Soule, and others rep- resented the determination of the South to extend the area of slave territory or dissolve the Union. Web- ster and Clay, the great champions of compromise, passed away. Benton, who had represented Mis- souri for thirty years in the Senate, was defeated in his own State, leaving Houston as the sole conspic- uous representative of the old Union or Jackson Democracy from the South. In January, 1853, he was reelected Senator by the legislature of Texas without any formidable opposition. On March 4, 1853, Franklin Pierce was inaugu- rated President of the United States as the flexible instrument of the aggressive Southern element. In 306 SAM HOUSTON the early part of the session of 1854 Senator Douglas, of Illinois, from the Committee on Territories, re- ported the Kansas-Nebraska bill, which repealed the Missouri Compromise, to which the country had clung since 1820 as the pledge of peace and security, and opened all the national territory to the chances of slave colonization. Houston rose at once to the height of the occasion. He opposed the bill vehe- mently and unflinchingly. In a speech, delivered at the night session of March 8, just before the passage of the bill, which marked his commanding power as 1 an orator on a great occasion, and with a prophetic I wisdom and prescience, he exposed the follies and dangers of the bill to the country and to the South in particular. He said, in emphatic words, of the peril it would bring to the Union : — "Mr. President, I cannot believe that the agitation created by this measure will be confined to the Senate chamber. I cannot believe from what we have wit- nessed here to-night that this will be the exclusive arena for the exercise of human passion and the ex- pression of public opinion. If the Eepublic be not shaken, I will thank Heaven for its kindness in main- taining its stability." He pointed out with much sagacity the special perils which it would bring to Texas : — "I will give you my reasons why I think Texas would be in the most deplorable condition of all the Southern States. It is now the terminus of the slave population. It is a country of vast extent and fertile SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 307 soil, favorable to the culture and growth of those productions which are most important to the necessi- ties of the world, — cotton, sugar, and tobacco. An immense slave population must eventually go there. The demand for labor is so great, everything is so inviting to the enterprising and industrious, that la- bor will be transferred there because it will be of a most profitable character, and the disproportion of slaves to the white population must be immense. Then, sir, it must become the gulf of slavery, and there its terrible eddies will whirl if convulsions take place." He brushed aside the question of the principle of non-intervention, as claimed by the South, and showed that it was as useless in theory as it would be dangerous in practice : — "I again ask, What benefit is to result to the South from this measure if adopted? . . . Will it secure these territories to the South. No, sir, not at all. But the gentleman tells us. It is the principle we want. I can perceive but one principle involved in the measure, and that principle lies at the root of agitation ; and from that all the tumults and excite- ments of the country must arise. That is the only principle I can perceive. We are told by Southern as well as Northern gentlemen, those who are for it, and those who are against it, that slavery will never be extended to that Territory, that it will never go there ; but it is the principle of non-intervention it is desired to establish. Sir, we have done well under 308 SA3I HOUSTON tlie intervention of the Missouri Compromise, if the gentlemen so call it, in other Territories, and I ad- jure you, when there is so much involved, not to press the matter too far. What is to be the conse- quence? If it is not in embryo, my suggestion will not make it so. It has been suggested elsewhere, and I may repeat it here. What is to be the effect of this measure if adopted, and you repeal the Missouri Compromise ? The South is to gain nothing by it, for honorable gentlemen from the South, and espe- cially the junior Senator from Virginia, characterize it as a miserable, trifling, little measure. Then, sir, is the South to be benefited or propitiated by conferring upon her a miserable, trifling, little measure? Will that compensate the South for her uneasiness ? Will it allay the agitation of the North? Will it preserve the union of these States ? Will it sustain the Dem- ocratic or the Whig party in their organizations? No, sir, they all go to the wall. What is to be the effect on the government? It is to be most fatal and ruinous to the future harmony and well-being of the country. I think that the measure itself would be useless. If you establish non-intervention you make nothing by that. But what will be the consequences in the minds of the people ? They have a veneration for that compromise. They have a respect and rev- erence for it, from its antiquity and the associations connected with it, and repeated references to it that seemed to suggest that it marked the boundaries of free and slave territory. They have no respect for it SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 309 as a compact, — I do not care what you call it, — but as a line defining certain rights and privileges to dif- ferent sections of the Union. The abstractions which you indulge in here can never satisfy the people that there is not something in it. Abrogate or disannul it, and you exasperate the public mind. It is not necessary that reason should accompany excitement. Feeling is enough to agitate without much reason, and that will be the great prompter on this occasion. My word for it, we shall realize scenes of agitation, which are rumbling in the distance now." As to the charge that he was faithless to the South and in alliance with the Abolitionists he replied in manly words: — "This is an eminently perilous measure, and do you expect me to remain here silent, or to shrink from the discharge of my duty in admonishing the South of what I consider the results will be ? I will do it, in spite of all the intimidations, or threats, or discountenances that may be thrown upon me. Sir, the charges that I am going with the Abolitionists or the Free-Soilers affects not me. The discharge of conscious duty prompts me often to confront the united array of the very section of the country in which I reside, in which my associations are, in which my personal interests have always been, and in which my affections rest. Where every look to the setting sun carries me to the bosom of a family dependent upon me, think you I could be alien to them? Never, — never." 310 SAM HOUSTON His apprehensions of the evils which would follow the passage of the bill were no less than a prophecy for the country and himself : — "I had fondly hoped, Mr. President, that, having attained to my present period of life, I should pass the residue of my days, be they many or few, in peace and tranquillity; that as I found the country growing up rapidly, and have witnessed its immea- surable expansion and development, when I close my eyes on scenes around me, I would at least have the cherished consolation and hope that I left my children to a peaceful, happy, prosperous, and united com- munity. I had hoped this. Fondly had I cherished the desire and the expectation from 1850 until after the introduction of this bill. My hoj)es are less san- guine now. My anxieties increase, but my expecta- tion lessens. Sir, if this repeal takes place I will have seen the commencement of the agitation; but the youngest child now born, I am apprehensive, will not live to witness its termination." In conclusion, he made an appeal for the Indians who were to be dispossessed from the territory, and whom none of the other statesmen, who were strug- gling for or against the extension of slavery, had thought it worth while to consider. His views on the policy of treating the Indians had more than a tem- porary bearing. He said : — "Mr. President, I have very little hope that any appeal that I may make on behalf of the Indians will do any good. The honorable Senator from Indiana SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 311 says in substance that God Almighty has condemned them, and made them an inferior race; that there is no use in doing anything for them. With great deference to that Senator, for whom I have never cherished anything but kind feelings, I must be per- mitted to dissent from his opinions. He says they are not civilized, and *they are not homogeneous, and can- not be so with the white race. They cannot be civil- ized ! No ! Sir, it is idle to tell me that. We have Indians on our western borders whose civilization is not inferior to our own. . . . They have well-organ- ized societies; they have their villages and towns; they have their state houses and their capitols; they have females and men who would grace the drawing- rooms or salons of Washington; they have a well- organized judiciary, a trial by jury, and the writ of habeas corpus. These are the people for whom I demand justice in the organization of these territo- ries. . . . But the honorable Senator from Iowa characterizes the remarks which I made in reference to the Indians as arising from a feeling of 'sickly sentimentality.' Sir, it is a sickly sentimentality that was implanted in me when I was young, and it has grown up with me. The Indian has a sense of justice, truth, and honor that should find a respon- sive chord in every heart. If the Indians on the frontier are barbarous, or if they are cannibals and eat each other, who are to blame for it? They are robbed of the means of sustenance; and with hun- dreds and thousands of them starving on the frontier, 312 SAM HOUSTON liunger may prompt to such acts to prevent their perishing. We shall never become cannibals in con- nection with the Indians, but we do worse than that. We rob them first of their native dignity and char- acter; we rob them next of what the government appropriates for them. If we do not do it in this hall, men are invested with power and authority who, officiating as agents or traders, rob them of everything which is designed for them. Not less than one hundred millions of dollars, I learn from statistics, since the adoption of this government, have been appropriated by Congress for purposes of justice and benevolence toward the Indians ; but I am satis- fied that they have never received fifteen millions beneficially. They are too remote from the seat of government to have their real condition und.erstood here; and if the government intends liberality or justice toward them, it is often diverted from the intended object, and consumed by speculators. . . . Now I should like to know if it becomes us to violate a treaty made with the Indians when we please, regardless of justice and honor? We should be care- ful if it were with a power able to war with us ; and it argues a degree of infinite meanness and indescrib- able degradation on our part to act differently with the Indians, who confide in our honor and justice, and who call the President their Great Father, and confide in him. Mr. President, it is in the power of the Congress of the United States to do some justice to the Indians by giving them a government of their SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 313 own, and encouraging them in tlieir organization and improvement by inviting their delegates to a place on the floor of the Senate and House of Representa- tives. If you will not do it, the sin will lie at your door, and Providence in his own way, mysterious and incomprehensible to us though it is, will accom- plish all his purposes, and may at some day avenge the wrongs of the Indians upon our nation. As a people we can save them; and the sooner the great work is begun, the sooner will humanity have cause to rejoice in its accomplishment." The bill was passed, Houston and John Bell, of Tennessee, being the only Senators from Southern States who voted against it. Benton was not in his accustomed seat in the Senate, but from his place in the House of Representatives he inveighed against the measure, and protested against the political mad- ness which precipitated it upon the country. One of the incidents connected with the controversy in the Senate, which showed Houston's courage and manliness, was in relation to the treatment of the petition of three thousand clergymen of New Eng- land, which had been presented against the passage of the Nebraska bill. An attempt was made to re- ject the petition, on the ground that it was insulting to the Senate in pronouncing its action "immoral" and in invoking the vengeance of the Almighty upon the advocates of the bill. Senator Douglas made a violent attack upon it, declaring it an "atrocious falsehood," an "atrocious calumny," and that its 314 SAM HOUSTON signers had "desecrated the pulpit and prostituted the sacred desk." Senators Mason, Butler, Badger, and others denounced it in very severe terms. Edward Everett, who had presented the petition, made a fee- ble and apologetic defense, which avoided the point at issue in the character of the memorial. While Douglas was speaking, Houston cried out to Sumner, the other Massachusetts Senator, "Sumner, don't speak, don't speak; leave him to me." Sumner re- plied, "Will you take care of him?" "Yes," said Houston, "if you will leave him to me." His pur- pose in taking the place of Sumner, he said, was that Douglas should have no opportunity to sustain his charge that the memorial was the work of Abolition confederates. In his remarks he vigorously defended the character of the petitioners and the rights and duty of clergymen to express their opinion on polit- ical subjects. He was sharply criticised for making use of the expression of " vice-gerents of God" in regard to them, but he explained it as simply mean- ing that they were the ministers and aids of the Almighty. As Houston had no sympathy with the Abolition sentiments of the petitioners his course was the more honorable and manly. During the troubles in Kansas which followed the passage of the bill he was silent, and, doubtless, only regarded them as the fulfillment of his prophecies of evil. He was equally silent in regard to the attack upon Sumner in the Senate chamber. He had seen such methods of car- rying on political controversy before, and given an SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 315 example of it in his own person, so that he was hardly in a position to reprimand it severely. But he must have been revolted at the mingled brutality and cowardice of Brooks's attack upon an unarmed and unprepared man within the walls of the Senate chamber. Houston distinguished himself during his whole senatorial career by his defense of the rights of the Indians. He was indignant at the system of misman- agement, robbery, and oppression which character- ized the treatment of them by the government, and in repeated speeches he urged a more humane, intel- ligent, and practical method of dealing with them. He was almost alone in Congress in defending their rights. The professional philanthropy of the time was almost entirely enlisted in the cause of the negro, and the practical politicians regarded the Indian as a nuisance when he could not be made a prey. A great interest was involved throughout the entire West in getting possession of the Indian lands, and was energetically pushed by its representatives in Congress. Houston's own people were not in sym- pathy with him, and public opinion was indifferent where it was not hostile. But he spoke out in manly terms on every occasion, and it was to him that the delegations of Indians who visited Washington ap- pealed for advice and assistance. Mr. C. Edwards Lester in his rhetorical pamphlet, " Sam Houston and his Republic," gives a somewhat overstrained, but probably essentially true account of the meeting of a 316 SAM HOUSTON delegation of prairie Indians with Houston in Wash- ington : — "During the latter part of June, 1846, General Morehead arrived in Washington with forty wild Indians from Texas, belonging to more than a dozen tribes. We saw their meeting with General Hous- ton. One and all ran to him, and clasped him in their brawny arms, and hugged him, like bears, to their naked breasts, and called him ' father. ' Be- neath the copper skin and thick paint the blood rushed, and their faces changed, and the lips of -many a warrior trembled, although the Indian may not weep. These wild men knew him, and revered him as one who was too directly descended from the Great Spirit to be approached with familiarity, and yet they loved him so well they coidd not help it. These were the men 'he had been,' in the fine language of Acquiquosk, whose words we quote, 'too subtle for on the war-path, too powerful in battle, too magnani- mous in victory, too wise in council, and too true in faith.' They had flung away their arms in Texas, and with the Comanche chief, who headed their file, had come to Washington to see their father." In a speech on the treatment of the Indians, De- cember 31, 1854, Houston said, "I never knew a case when a treaty was made and carried out in good faith which was violated by the Indians," and with one of his vigorous expressions, "I might have hated the Indians if I had a soul no bigger than a shell- bark." In an elaborate speech, January 29, 1855, SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 317 against increasing the army he contended that the military methods were not the best way of dealing with the Indians, and gave many instances of un- called-for severity, injustice, and corruption by army officers. He gave his practical views of how to deal with the Indians : — "Withdraw your army. Have five hundred cav- alry, if you will, but I would rather have two hun- dred and fifty Texas rangers (such as I could raise) than five hundred of the best cavalry now in service. I would have one thousand infantry so placed as to guard the United States against Mexico, and five hundred for scouting purposes. I would have five trading-houses from the Rio Grande to the Red River for intercourse with the Indians. I would have a guard of twenty -five men out of an infantry regiment at each trading-house, who would be vigilant and always on the alert. Cultivate intercourse with the Indians. Show them that you have comforts to ex- change for their peltries; bring them around you; domesticate them; familiarize them with civilization. Let them see that you are rational beings, and they will become rational in imitation of you. But take no whiskey there at all, not even for the officers, for fear their generosity would let it out. Do this, and you will have peace with the Indians. Whenever you convince an Indian that he is dependent on you for comforts or for what he deems luxuries or ele- gances of life, you attach him to you. Intercourse and kindness will win the fiercest animal on earth, 318 SAM HOUSTON except the hyena, and its spots and nature cannot be changed. The nature of an Indian can be changed. He changes under favorable circumstances, and rises to the dignity of a civilized being. It takes a gener- ation or two to regenerate his race, but it can be done. I would have fields around the trading-houses. I would encourage the Indians to cultivate them. Let them see how much it adds to their comfort ; how it secures to their wives and children abundant sub- sistence, and then you win the Indian over to civili- zation^ you charm him, and he becomes a civilized man." In attending to the confederacy which was said to have been formed by the tribes of the Sioux na- tion, he said : — "Theirs is not a confederacy to assail the whites, but to protect themselves. I justify them in doing it. I am sorry there is a necessity for it ; but if I were among them, and they proposed a confederacy to repel cruelty and butchery, I would join them, and he would be a dastard who would not! " These were words in a different and nobler strain than those which the Senate was accustomed to hear about the incurable barbarism of the Indians, and the "sickly sentimentality " of doing anything with them, except rob them of their lands and butcher them if they resisted. In 1856, there was a movement for the nomination of Houston to the Presidency. The General Com- mittee of the Democracy of New Hampshire issued SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 319 an address, urging his nomination as "The People's Candidate," on the ground, mainly, of his opposition to the Nebraska bill and the repeal of the Missouri Compromise. A campaign biography, in the usual style of extravagant eulogy, was published, and Houston made a sort of electioneering tour in some of the principal cities in the North, delivering addresses on the political condition of the country and on the Indian question. This was the period of the brief existence of the Know-Nothing party. Whether Houston ever definitely joined it is not known, but he was in sympathy with its opposition to the easy naturalization of foreigners, and was possibly ready to become its candidate for the Presidency if it ex- hibited itself in any degree of national strength. He had voted in the Senate for an allotment of lands to the Hungarian refugees, but he was not carried away with the popular admiration for Kossuth. When Kossuth was received by the Senate the following account of his meeting with Houston was given in the newspaper report : — "Among the incidents of the reception it may be mentioned that when the martial figure of General Houston approached Kossuth there appeared to be a special attraction in the person of the hero of San Jacinto. Mr. Houston said, 'Sir, you are welcome to the Senate of the United States.' Kossuth feel- ingly replied, 'I can only wish I had been as success- ful as you, sir. ' To which Houston responded, ' God grant you may be, sir.' " 320 SAM HOUSTON Later, he expressed his oj)inion of'Kossuth in very unflattering terms, accused him of cowardice in re- treating from Hungary without striking a blow, and of living in splendor and luxury while his people were "left to bite the dust, or gnaw the file in agony." The very different treatment which he and the people of Texas had received, in comparison with the wild enthusiasm over Kossuth and Hungary, evidently ran- kled in his thoughts. He was promptly accused of his affiliation with the Know-Nothings, and of his presidential aspirations, and gave a rather equivocal denial of them both in the course of a running debate in the Senate. As to the Know-Nothings, he said, "I know nothing," but he concurred in many of the principles attributed to them. He would require "every person coming from abroad, before being received here, to bring an in- dorsement from one of our consuls, and produce evi- dence of good character from the place whence he emigrates, so that when he comes here we may receive him into full communion, with all the rights guaran- teed to him by the laws which may exist at the time of his immigration." He declared that he would not vote for any bill to prohibit Eoman Catholics from holding office. In regard to the Presidency, he said, "When the Senator from Iowa supposes that I would cater for the Presidency of the United States he does me great injustice. I would not cater for any office under heaven. But, sir, I know one thing; if it were to be forced upon me I would make a great SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 821 many changes in some small matters." At the con- vention of the "American" party in Baltimore, Feb- ruary 22, 1856, which nominated Millard Fillmore for the Presidency, Houston received three votes. What- ever relations he may have had with the Know-No- thing party he afterward abandoned, and denounced it. In a speech at Nacogdoches he declared the party dead, and buried face downward beyond the hope of resurrection. Houston was undoubtedly aware that his opposition to the extreme Southern element was fatal to his political ambition. As in the case of Benton, he was more bitterly hated and violently attacked on the ground that he was a traitor to Southern interests than if he had been a Northern antagonist of slavery. Henry A. Wise and others made themselves conspic- uous by diatribes against him in public meetings in Southern cities, and, although Houston made no pub- lic reply in the Senate or elsewhere, it is not likely that he repressed his tongue in private comment on his adversaries, or that they were not made aware of his opinion of them. In the Democratic Convention of 1856, a "Northern man with Southern principles" was nominated, and the Southern conspirators secured four years more in which to make their preparations for disunion. In the mean time, the extreme element had been gaining political power in Texas. The feeling of the danger to slave property and of antag- onism to the North had been sedulously cultivated, and the wealthier planters, who had grown up among 322 SAM HOUSTON the original settlers, acquired the political control. They were joined by the old enemies and rivals of Houston, and violent attacks were made not only upon his so-called apostasy to the South, but his past career in Texas. It is probable that Houston realized that his course would cost him his seat in the Senate, and there are some indications that he was willing that it should be so. At least, he made no such de- termined attempt to retain his place as Benton had done in Missouri. With his strong hold upon the people of Texas, and his wonderful power in a per- sonal campaign of stump-speaking, he might have de- feated the combination against him, and rallied the people to his support, as he did later, in 1859, when he swept the State against a still more formidable opposition. But he made ho special effort to be re- elected, and left the canvass to his opponents. It is possible that Houston did not feel entirely at home in the Senate, where he could not be the undisputed leader, as he could be in a popular assembly, and really had a longing for the ease and tranquillity of private life, such as sometimes comes over the strong- est men of action after a life of stress and excitement. At any rate, he was defeated for reelection to the Sen- ate in the Legislature of 1857, and Lewis T. Wigfall, a rampant fire-eater, was chosen in his place. His colleague. Senator Rusk, with whom he had been on the most affectionate and friendly terms, committed suicide by shooting himself at Nacogdoches, July 5, 1857, from grief at the death of his wife. Houston SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 323 was nominated as an independent candidate for gov- ernor, but manifested little interest in the campaign, and was defeated by tbe regular Democratic candi- date, Hardin E. Eunneis. The vote stood 32,552 for Eunneis, and 23,628 for Houston. It was the only time in which Houston was ever defeated in an election by the people of Texas. After his defeat Houston continued the perform- ance of his duties in the Senate without sign of dis- comfiture. On April 20, 1858, he offered a resolu- tion for the appointment of a committee of seven to inquire into the expediency of the assumption by the United States of a protectorate over Mexico, and supported it in an elaborate speech. He described the hopeless condition of Mexico, and urged the measure as a legitimate extension of the Monroe Doc- trine. It was an impracticable scheme, which would have eventually compelled the United States to take possession of the country, but it is probable that Houston hoped that it would arouse a spirit of na- tional pride throughout the United States, which would divert attention from the sectional quarrels. He said, speaking of the era of the promulgation of the Monroe Doctrine : — "At that glorious epoch there was a broad, tower- ing spirit of nationality extant. The States stood in the endearing relation to each other of one for all and all for one. The Constitution was their political text- book, the glory of the Eepublic their resolute aim. Practically, there was but one party, and that party 324 SAM HOUSTON animated by but one object, — one upward and on- ward career. As if in atonement for tlie wrong in- flicted upon the country by the angry Missouri Com- promise, which was then fresh in every mind, there seemed to be no circumscription which everywhere within our embraces displayed itself. May we not trust, Mr. President, that a similar result will ensue from this still more angry Kansas controversy, and that the benign influence of such results will be as durable as creation? " The country, however, was too much excited for any such panacea, and its results would only have been mischievous even if it had been adopted. On January 12, 1859, Houston advocated the southern route for the Pacific Railroad through Texas and asked for the preliminary surveys. In the course of his speech he alluded to the peace and harmony which would exist between the North and South, and he was accused by Senator Iverson, of Georgia, with being a candidate for the Presidency, and with catering for Northern votes. He replied : — "If every political party of this Union were to ten- der to me this day the nomination for the Presidency I would respectfully decline it. I have higher, no- bler, tenderer duties to perform. I have to create a resting-place for those who are dear to me as the peo- ple of this Union, and who form part of them. These are the duties I have to perform. If there is aught of public service that remains to me unfinished I am not apprised of it. My life has been meted out to SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 325 sixty -five years ; and forty -five years of that life de- voted to my country's service, almost continuously, should entitle me to an honorable discharge. I claim that discharge from my country. I claim that, hav- ing performed every duty which devolved upon me with fidelity, I ought to be permitted to retire from this chamber in accordance with my heart-felt desires, with a constitution, thank God, not much impaired, and with clean hands and a clean conscience, to the retirement where duties are demanded of me as a fa- ther. So the defeat which has been spoken of was no disappointment, and by way of explanation that the gentleman may be more perfectly satisfied, I will say that had my lamented and honorable colleague. Gen- eral Rusk, remained with us, by the providence of God, on the 4th of March last I should have vacated my seat, and retired to the walks of private life." In conclusion, with that personal seK-appreciation which was seldom wanting from his speeches, he ac- cused Senator Iverson of playing the part of the ass in kicking the face of the dead lion. On February 23, 1859, he presented the resolutions of the Texas legislature, impeaching John C. Watrous, United States district judge, and supported them in a long and somewhat vindictive account of the charges against him. On February 26, he delivered his last speech to the Senate. It was a circumstantial review and defense of his conduct as commander-in-chief during the war of independence in Texas, and a re- tort upon the personal character and conduct of some 326 SAM HOUSTON of his accusers. In bidding farewell to the Senators he said that he had felt it his duty to cultivate kindly personal relations with every one of them. His last words were the expression of a prayer that " the perpetuity of the Union might he secured to the latest posterity." It was true that Houston had not carried into the Senate his habit of personal quarrel on political ques- tions, which he had too often manifested, or readily responded to, in the turbulent and passionate rivalries and controversies of Texas. He had grown calmer since the days when he had struck down Stanberry in the streets of Washington, and the sober and de- corous atmosphere of the Senate doubtless exercised a restraining influence upon him. There is no in- stance in which he did not thoroughly maintain the proprieties of debate, and his tone toward his fellow- Senators was that of the dignified and impressive politeness which no one knew better how to exhibit. He was a solitary as well as a peculiar figure in the Senate, having no share in the counsels of his party, and alienated by his political course from the rep- resentatives of his own section. He had not the education, the training, or the capacity for the argu- mentative debates on questions of law and technical legislation, which were necessary to command a lead- ing place in the Senate, and, although his shrewd and practical common sense was often exhibited in mat- ters of detail, it was only from his position and his fervid utterances against disunion that he attracted SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 327 national attention, and manifested his wisdom as well as his courage. His reverence for the example of Jackson doubtless gave his mind its original bias, but he perceived with a clear vision the folly of the South in precipitating the conflict, in which it was sure to be overwhelmed, and his love for the Union was enlightened wisdom as well as patriotic passion. On the question of slavery he said, "I am not the enemy of slavery; neither am I its propagandist, nor will I ever be." He was a slave-holder, and accepted the institution as a part of the social system in which he found himself. But his conscience revolted against its iniquitous principle, and his practical sa- gacity doubted its continuance. His strength and friendship lay with the industrious yeomanry, who cultivated their own lands, and he had no sympathy or affiliation with the oligarchy of rich planters, who were leading the South to ruin. In the Senate, he was the last representative of the hardy frontiersmen who had built their cabins in the primeval forest, or turned the soil of the virgin prairie, and he saw with regret the growth of that class at the South who were monopolizing the land for great plantations, and were creating an aristocracy of wealth, based on slave labor. To him and to Thomas H. Benton is due the credit of representing the true welfare of the South, and with courage and wisdom resisting the tendencies which were leading it to destruction, and to the social and industrial decadence which would have followed, even if there had been no civil war. 328 SAM HOUSTON Mr. Oliver Dyer, in his book of reminiscences of Washington, "Great Senators of the United States," gives an interesting account of Houston's appearance and manners in the Senate in 1848 : — " It was not without apprehension that I first ap- proached General Houston, and looked him over, as he stood in an ante-room of the Senate chamber, talk- ing with his colleague. Senator Kusk. I was not disappointed in his appearance. It was easy to be- lieve in his heroism, and to imagine him leading a heady fight and dealing destruction on his foes. He was then only fifty -five years old, and seemed to be in perfect health and admirable physical condition. He was a magnificent barbarian, somewhat tempered with civilization. He was large of frame, of stately carriage and dignified demeanor, and had a lion-like countenance, capable of expressing the fiercest pas- sions. His dress was peculiar, but it was becoming to his style. The conspicuous features of it were a military cap and a short military cloak of fine blue broadcloth with a blood-red lining. Afterward I occasionally met him, when he wore a vast and pic- turesque sombrero and a Mexican blanket, — a sort of ornamented bed-quilt, with a slit in the middle, through which the wearer's head is thrust, leaving the blanket to hang in graceful folds around the body. "Like other men of his class General Houston was a hearty drinker, but he seldom showed the effect of his potations. It seemed to me as though his wild life had unfitted him for civilization. He was not SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 329 a man to shine in a deliberative assembly. It was only at rare intervals that he took any part in the debates, and when he did speak his remarks were brief. His principal employment in the Senate was whittling pine sticks. I used to wonder where he got his pine lumber, but never fathomed the mystery. He would sit and whittle away, and at the same time keep up a muttering of discontent at the long-winded speakers, whom he would sometimes curse for their intolerable Verbosity. Those who knew him well said that he was tender-hearted, and had a chivalric regard for women ; that he would make any personal sacrifice to promote the welfare of a lady friend, — a reputation that was directly in line with his alleged conduct toward his wife. It was a matter of com- mon jocose remark that if 'Old Sam Jacinto ' (that was Houston's nickname) should ever become Presi- dent, he would have a cabinet of women. "General Houston impressed me as a lonely, mel- ancholy man. And if the story of his early life was true he might well be lonely and melancholy, in spite of his success and his fame; for that blow which smote him to the heart at the zenith of his splendid young career, and dislocated his life and drove him into the wilderness, must have inflicted wounds that no political triumphs or military glory could heal." Somewhat singularly, considering their marked con- trast in education and temperament, Houston appears to have attracted the regard and approval of Charles Sumner. In a letter to John Bigelow, February 3, 330 SAM HOUSTON 1851, Sumner wrote: "I am won very much by Houston's conversation. With him the anti -slavery interests would stand better than with any man who now seems among the possibilities. He is really against slavery, and has no prejudices against Free- Soilers. In other respects he is candid, liberal, and honorable. I have been astonished to find myself so much of his inclining." During his early residence as a Senator in Wash- ington, Houston "experienced religion," as it is termed. In an account of his conversion given by Eev. G. W. Simpson, his pastor in Washington, it is stated that "one Sunday, the tall form of Sam Houston, as he was familiarly called, draped in his Mexican blanket as a shield against the blasts of winter, was seen entering the sanctuary of the Baptist Church near the City Hall. Approaching the pas- tor after the service he said that respect for his wife, one of the best Christians on earth, had brought him there. He attended regularly thereafter, and kept up his habit of whittling toys for children in his pew. He paid close attention to the sermons, and was in the habit of giving abstracts of them in the weekly letters which he regularly wrote to his wife on Sun- day afternoons. After a few months a sermon on the text, "Better is he that ruleth his spirit than he that taketh a city," moved him to a sense of his spiritual needs, and his thoughts and reading became more and more of a religious character. He was much influenced by a book by one Nelson on " The SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 331 Cause and Cure of Infidelity," and gave copies of it to his friends. Finally, lie made an open profession of religion, and received the ordinance of baptism by immersion at Independence, Texas, in 1854. His reading of the Bible was continuous and earnest, and its phraseology and imagery found frequent places in his speeches. His pastor relates an anecdote in somewhat exaggerated phraseology of his reconcilia- tion with a personal enemy under the influence of an appeal to his religious sentiment : — "Calling early after his arrival to see him, an hour was spent in conversation on his profession and the grounds which had led to it. On rising to leave, the pastor was followed as usual to the door, and, as often happened, the General asked: 'Brother S., is there anything I can do for you?' — his reference being to claims of humanity sometimes presented to him. The reply was, 'No, General, I have no tax upon you at present.' Immediately, however, the recollection was awakened that the next Sabbath was the season for the Lord's Supper, and that with one of the leading brethren of the church General Hous- ton had formerly a trying and yet unsettled contro- versy in his official capacity as the head of a Senate committee. At once, prompted by the recollection, the pastor added, still holding his hand, 'General, I recall that statement in part; I have nothing to ask of you as a man, but I have something to ask of you as a Christian pastor.' Fixing his keen eye, as he looked down, upon mine, he meekly but firmly asked. \/ 332 SAM HOUSTON 'What is it, Brother S.?' 'General,' was the re- ply, 'you know the alienation between you and Brother W. You will meet at the Lord's Supper next Sabbath evening; you onjght not to meet until that difficulty is settled. Now I wish you after ser- vice on Sunday morning to let me bring you two to- gether, and without a word of attempt at justification on either side, I wish you to take him by the hand, and say with all your heart that you will forgive and forget and bury the past, and that you wish him to do the same, and hereafter to meet as brothers in Christ.' The fire began to glow in his eyes, his brow to knit, his teeth to clench, and his whole frame shook with the struggle of the old man within him ; but in an instant the man whose passion had been terrible, indeed ungovernable, on so many a bloody battle-field, was changed from the lion into the lamb. He meekly replied, 'Brother S., I will do it.' And what he promised was done, and in an air of majestic frankness and nobleness of soul such as moved every beholder." At the conclusion of his term in the Senate, Hous- ton returned to his home in Texas, possibly with the hope that his later years might be spent in peace and freedom from public care. CHAPTER XV GOVERNOR OF TEXAS — SECESSION Whatever hopes Houston may have had of being able to pass his declining years in peace and tranquil- lity, he found the political condition of Texas more excited and disturbed than at any period since the revolution, and that it was necessary for him to gird up his loins for a tremendous struggle against the conspirators, who were endeavoring to array the State against the Union. The secession element in Texas was more desperate and determined than in any of the Southern States, except South Carolina. It was also more discreditable and criminal. In South Carolina the movement was more general, and in a certain sense more patriotic. It was founded on a definite theory of government, logically held and argued, and it represented the spirit of State pride and independence. In Texas, on the other hand, it was more selfish, and took the darker form of con- spiracy. Its leaders were the adventurers who were in sympathy with Walker in his attempts to subju- gate Central America, and with Lopez in his descent upon the island of Cuba, and were eager for any scheme that promised them power and plunder. Their avowed purpose was the reopening of the Afri- 334 SAM HOUSTON can slave trade, and tlieir unacknowledged, and per- haps unformulated, plans were for the formation of a buccaneer empire, with unlimited designs for aggres- sion and plunder upon their Spanish-American neigh- bors. They were represented by a secret society, called "The Knights of the Golden Circle," which had a regular military organization, was well supplied with arms, and had a considerable fund of money. The organization was originally formed to set on foot or support filibuster expeditions like those of Walker and Lopez, but the growing antagonism between the North and South offered them a more tempting field in the shape of a Southern empire, which they hoped to control for their purposes. Their lodges, called "castles," were established in all the principal towns, and it was estimated that at the outbreak of the secession difficulty they had a force of 8000 men, formed in regular military organization and to some extent disciplined. They were active in politics, and by their power and energy controlled the official ac- tion of the Democratic party. Governor Runnels was in sympathy with this element, as was also the majority of the legislature during his administration. During the excitement of the struggle to force the admission of slavery into Kansas, Governor Runnels issued a special message to the legislature, calling attention to the threatened aggressions upon Southern rights, and distinctly foreshadowing secession. The legislature adopted a resolution denouncing the at- tempts of the Northern States to exclude slavery SECESSION CONSPIRACY 335 from Kansas, and to prevent the slave-holders from carrying their property into the common territory of the Union. It authorized the governor to order an election of seven delegates to a convention of the Southern States, and, in case such a convention was not held, to call a special session of the legislature to consider the question of Texas resuming her inde- pendence. These open attacks upon the permanency of the Union aroused and alarmed the majority of the citi- zens, who were opposed to secession and the filibuster designs of the conspirators. In the Democratic Con- vention of 1859, which renominated Runnels, a plat- form was adopted advocating secession in the contin- gency of the further invasion of Southern rights, and there was an outspoken expression of opinion in favor of reopening the slave trade. The party in favor of reopening the slave trade did not confine themselves to declarations. Two cargoes of barbarian slaves from Africa were landed in chains, one near Galves- ton and one near Indianola, and distributed through the country. These events caused great excitement and indignation among the conservative and Unionist classes, and they determined upon political action in opposition to the secession Democracy. Houston was the natural leader from his personal popularity among the people and his vigorous denunciations of dis- union. There was no definite organization of the party, but at a public meeting at Brenham, Hous- ton was nominated for governor by acclamation. He 336 SAM HOUSTON accepted in a letter which declared that "the Consti- tution and the Union embraced all the principles by which he would be governed." The campaign that followed was one of the most notable and exciting which had ever taken place in Texas. It demonstrated Houston's tremendous hold upon the common people and his extraordinary power as a stump-speaker. All the party machin- ery, most of the prominent public men, and the influ- ential newspapers were against him. Almost single- handed he defeated them all. He made a thorough canvass of the State, speaking in nearly every town and village. He aroused the enthusiasm of the peo- ple by his eloquent appeals for the preservation of the Union, replied to the vindictive personal attacks made upon him by his opponents with a vituperation more scathing than their own, tickled his audiences by his familiar and sometimes coarse humor, and strengthened the attachment of his personal followers by his cordial greetings and intimate conversation. There was no one like Houston for a Texas audience. In joint debates he simply overwhelmed his competi- tors, and treated them with a contempt partly real and partly affected, as if it was insolence on their part to attempt to speak on the same platform with him. One after another they retired discomfited, and in his closing speech at Galveston he reckoned them up with contemptuous personal epithets. This is a specimen of the manner in which he dealt with them, and manifested his confidence in his hold upon CANVASS FOR GOVERNOR 337 the people. Senator Wigfall liad been replying to him in Eastern Texas. At a meeting in the court- house of one of the towns, at which Wigfall was pres- ent, Houston concluded his speech by saying : " I am told that there is a little fellow by the name of Wig- tail, or some such name, following me about and try- ing to answer my speeches. What he will tell you will be a pack of lies." So saying he stalked out, followed by a portion of the audience, leaving Wig- fall to make his speech to the remainder. Houston, as was his custom, seated himself upon a store-box on the sidewalk among his friends, and commenced whittling and talking familiarly about their families, the crops, and the neighborhood gossip. But all the while he kept his eye on the court-house door. When the audience began to come out after the conclusion of Wigfall' s speech, he rose up to his full height, and, waving his big white hat, shouted, "Didn't I say to you that he 'd tell you a pack of lies? " His familiar and caustic humor was equally taking, and the anecdotes of his sayings were relished at every cross-roads grocery and by every cabin fire. At the town of Milam a young lawyer, the son of an old friend of Houston, had established his office. Houston visited him, and talked with him in his usual cordial and impressive manner about his family and pros- pects. Later, while seated among a group of his friends in front of a store, he was informed that the young lawyer was the only man in the town who was going to vote against him. Presently the young man 338 SAM HOUSTON passed the group. Houston asked in a tone loud enougli for him to hear, " Who is that long, gangling scarecrow, who is going by? " This was considered a touch of humor, worthy of "Old Sam," and became the current joke of the neighborhood. Houston's triumph was in chief measure that of his personal influence. His course in opposing the Kansas-Ne- braska bill had been generally disapproved, and he had been defeated in the previous camj)aign in which he had not made an active personal canvass. He rallied and invigorated the Union sentiment, and converted a minority into a majority. The actions of the extreme element had undoubtedly alarmed the conservative portion of the community, but it is extremely improbable that the Union sentiment would have preponderated if Houston had not given it force and energy. As it was, the majority of the legisla- ture was in the hands of the disunionists, and his associates in the Executive, except one, were swept away by the tide, when it arose. A considerable portion of his vote was due simply to the fact that he was "Sam Houston," and had a strong personal party, which would have followed and supported bins under any circumstances. He received 36,257 vote^^- to 27,500 for Eunnels. Houston was inaugurated as Governor December* 21, 1859. He sent his message to the legislature January 15. Mexican banditti, under the command of Juan de Cortinas, had been preying upon the peo- ple on the border of the Eio Grande, and the Indians GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 339 had been especially troublesome and dangerous on the frontier. Houston promptly applied to the gov- ernment of the United States for additional troops, and organized three companies of rangers to patrol the frontier. He asked the legislature for an ap- propriation to pay them. He recommended various changes in the departments, and strongly urged lib- eral appropriations for the public schools. In regard to the relations of Texas with the United States, he congratulated the, legislature on the triumph of con- servatism in the nation, and the evident purpose to repress the dangerous agitators on both sides. He said, "Texas will maintain the Constitution and stand by the Union. It is all that can save us as a nation. Destroy it and anarchy awaits us." The excitement over the coming presidential elec- tion was rising to fever heat. Houston took no active part in the campaign. He was opposed to the elec- tion of Lincoln as the representative of Northern aggression against slavery. He was equally opposed to the election of Breckenridge and of Douglas, as he had vowed never to vote for any man who had supported the Kansas -Nebraska bill. He saw no ciiance for the election of Bell, and, besides, did not regard him as a competent man for the Presidency. Tn a private letter from Austin, dated September 8, 1860, he declared that he stood with folded arms in regard to the candidates, and he could see no way out of the difficulty except by the election of mem- bers of the Electoral College who would be pledged to 340 SAM HOUSTON vote for a Union man, regardless of the official can- didates. This was obviously a hopeless and impossi- ble scheme. On the 22d of September there was a grand Union mass meeting at Austin. Houston ad- dressed it in an eloquent and forcible speech, rising from a sick-bed to do so. He spoke of the glories of the common country and its great destiny, and pointed out the weakness of any State which aban- doned the Union. He declared that the possible tri- umph of the Republican party would not be a suffi- cient cause for the dissolution of the Union : — "But if, through division in the ranks of those op- posed to Mr. Lincoln, he should be elected, we have no excuse for dissolving the Union. The Union is worth more than Mr. Lincoln, and, if the battle is to be fought for the Constitution, let us fight it in the Union and for the sake of the Union. With a ma- jority of the people in favor of the Constitution, shall we desert the government, and leave it in the hands of the minority? A new obligation will be imposed upon us, to guard the Constitution and to see that no infraction of it is attempted or permitted. If Mr. Lincoln administers the government in accordance with the Constitution, our rights must be respected. If he does not, the Constitution provides a remedy." He denounced the disunion agitators of the South as merely reckless and mischievous conspirators, who owned no property and had no interest in slavery. "I know some of them, who are making the most fuss, who would not make good negroes if they were GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 341 blacked." He paid an affecting tribute to tbe memo- ries of Henry Clay and Andrew Jackson, and ap- pealed to the old Whigs and old Democrats to follow the example of their great leaders in devotion to the Union. He concluded with words of powerful and pathetic eloquence : — "When I look back and remember the names that are canonized as the tutelar saints of liberty, and the warnings they have given you against disunion, I cannot believe that you will be led astray. I cannot be long among you. My sands of life are fast run- ning out. As the glass becomes exhausted, if I can feel that I can leave my country prosperous and united, I shall die content. To leave men with whom I have mingled in troublous times, and whom I have learned to love as brothers; to leave the children of those whom I have seen pass away, after lives of de- votion to the Union; to leave the people who have borne me up and sustained me; to leave my coun- try, and not feel the liberty and happiness I have enjoyed would still be theirs, would be the worst pang of death. I am to leave children among you, to share the fate of your children. Think you I feel no interest in the future for their sakes? We are passing away. They must encounter the evils which are to come. In the far distant future the genera- tions that spring from our loins are to venture in the path of glory and honor. If untrammeled, who can tell the mighty progress they will make? If cut adrift, if the calamitous curse of disunion is inflicted 342 SAM HOUSTON upon them, who can picture their misfortune and shame?" Houston believed in the prevalence of the Union sentiment among the people of the South, and endeav- ored to give it an opportunity for expressing itself. He addressed letters to the Governors of the South- ern States, proposing a convention, and issued a proclamation for an election to be held early in Feb- ruary for the choice of the seven delegates under the resolution of the previous legislature for that pur- pose. But events anticipated the election, and it was never held. The Governors of the Southern States, who were all disunionists, paid no attention to Hous- ton's letters. He was denounced everywhere as a traitor to the South. Senator Wigfall said in Vir- ginia that he ought to, be tarred and feathered and driven from the State. Senator Iverson, of Georgia, his old antagonist in the Senate, went so far as to hint at his assassination. He said, "Some Texan Brutus may arise to rid his country of this old, hoary -headed traitor." Lincoln was elected. South Carolina seceded, and applied to the other Southern States to unite and form a confederacy. The demand for action on the invitation was so strong that Houston called a special session of the legislature to meet January 21. Al- ready illegal steps had been taken to force the State out of the Union. A proclamation had been issued from Austin, signed by about sixty citizens, clerks in the departments and others, calling for a general GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 343 election to be held on January 8, for a convention of delegates from the people to meet on January 28. The election was held, but only a comparatively few of the people recognized its validity, the total num- ber of votes cast being less than 10,000. It was to forestall the action of this illegal body that Houston called the legislature together and recommended a properly called and constituted convention. In his message he declared that he believed that the time had come for the people of Texas to take action in accordance with their sovereign will. While deplor- ing the election of Messrs. Lincoln and Hamlin, he could see no reason in it for the immediate and sepa- rate secession of Texas. He deprecated any hasty action, and thought that means should be taken for the people to express their will by legal means. "They have stood aloof from revolutionary measures, and now demand an opportunity to express their will through the ballot box." He had not lost faith that their rights could be maintained in the Union, and that it might yet be perpetuated. Between constitu- tional remedies and anarchy and civil war, he could see no middle course. In his message, January 24, transmitting the resolutions of the legislature of South Carolina, Houston declared his "unqualified protest against and dissent from the principles enunci- ated in the resolutions." He argued against the right of secession on constitutional grounds, and showed the total lack of any guarantee of permanency in a new confederacy. He concluded : — 344 SAM HOUSTON "I would therefore recommend the adoption of resolutions dissenting from the assertion of the ab- stract right of secession and refusing to send deputies for any present existing cause, and urging upon the people of all the States, North and South, the neces- sity of cultivating brotherly feeling, observing jus- tice, and attending to their own affairs." The convention met on the day appointed, and the legislature promptly adopted a resolution recognizing its authority. Houston vetoed it on the ground that its election had been illegal. The resolution was passed over his veto. The convention immediately adopted an ordinance of secession by a vote of 167 to 7, and provided for its submission to the people at an election on February 23. Without waiting for its ratification, the convention elected delegates to the Congress of the Southern States at Montgom- ery, and appointed a Committee of Public Safety, of which John C. Robertson was president. The Com- mittee of Public Safety immediately took steps to secure the arms and military property of the United States, and appointed three commissioners to arrange for the terms of their surrender with General David E. Twiggs, the commander of the troops in the Department. The military Department of Texas was the most important and richly supplied of any in the United States. The demands for the protection of the line of the Rio Grande against the predatory incursions of the Mexicans, and of the exposed frontiers against SECESSION 345 the dangerous wild tribes of Indians, had called a large jDortion of the army to be stationed there. It was scattered in various posts along the Eio Grande and on the northern frontier for more than a thou- sand miles, and numbered about 2500 men. There was an immense amount of arms and military stores collected at the headquarters of the Department at San Antonio. General Twiggs, the commander of the Department, was an old and somewhat distin- guished officer of the army. He was in feeble health, and had long been on leave of absence at his residence in Louisiana. He sympathized thoroughly with the secession movement, and was undoubtedly in com- munication with its leaders. He returned unexpect- edly to resume the command on the 5th of December, 1860, superseding Colonel Eobert E. Lee, who per- haps could not be relied on to do the necessary work. He immediately began issuing leaves of absence to the officers, and still farther scattering the troops. He expressed himself as convinced that the Union ^ was already dissolved, and declared that he would never order his soldiers to fire on American citizens. He intimated that when a demand was made on him by the State, he would surrender the property of the government. Houston was informed of these asser- tions on the part of Twiggs, and for the purpose of testing him, or of obtaining the control of the arms in his own hands to thwart the designs of the seces- sionists, he sent on January 20, the day before the meeting of the legislature, .a special messenger to Twiggs with the following letter : — 346 SAM HOUSTON My dear General, — The present pressure of important events necessarily induces prompt action on the part of all public functionaries. In this view of the matter, I send to you General J. M. Smith of this State on a confidential mission, to know what in the present crisis you consider your duty to do, as to maintaining in behalf of the Federal Government or passing over to the State the possession of the posts, arsenals, and public property within the State; and also, if a demand for the possession of the same is made by the Executive, you are authorized, or it would be conformable to your sense of duty, to place in possession of the authorities of the State the posts, arms, munitions, and property of the Federal Govern- ment, on the order of the Executive, to an officer of the State, empowered to receive and receipt for the same. The course is suggested by the fact that information has reached the Executive that an effort will be made by an unauthorized mob to take forcibly and appro- priate the public stores and property to uses of their own, assuming to act on behalf of the State. Any arrangements made with you by General Smith will be sanctioned and approved by me, and should you require any assistance in resisting the con- templated and unauthorized attack upon the public property, and to place the same in possession of the state authorities, you are authorized to call on the mayor and citizens of San Antonio for such assist- ance as you may deem necessary. SECESSION 347 I will hope to hear from you, General, by my con- fidential agent, General Smith, as soon as he can have the honor of a conference with you on matters embraced in the present epoch of our national af- fairs. I am, General, yours very truly, Sam Houston. But Twiggs had no intention of putting the arms into the hands of any such Union man as Houston. He replied curtly that he was without instructions from the government, and that "after secession, in case the Executive of the State makes a demand upon the commander of the Department, he will re- ceive an answer." Whether Houston believed that by obtaining pos- session of the arms he could overawe the disunionists and prevent the secession of the State, or whether he merely wished to obtain a definite knowledge of the purposes of Twiggs, is unknown. His whole course showed that he preferred to submit to secession rather than to involve the State in civil war, although, per- haps, if he had been supported by the Federal Gov- ernment before the movement became so strong he might have resisted it. An account given by Rev. William M. Baker would indicate that he had such a purpose. A Texan merchant, and intimate friend of Houston's, stated that Houston informed him that President Lincoln, although not yet inaugurated, had sent Colonel F. W. Lander to him with a message 348 SAM HOUSTON that lie should have all the help he wanted, as soon as Lincoln took office, if he could only hold the State until then. Said Houston, "General Twiggs has agreed to do what he can to help me. I have 800 men waiting to come at a word. Volunteers will come in. I am sure that I can, with the aid of Gen- eral Twiggs, hold Texas against any force the Con- federacy may send." He then made a contract with the merchant for a supply of rations. The following is the account of the interview with Houston after he had received General Twiggs's reply to his mes- sage : — "The instant the Governor had locked me with him in his inner office, he turned to me with rage in his face. 'Sir,' said he to me, in a manner and tone which I can never forget, 'Twiggs is a traitor!' Then he sank down into his chair, the tears trickling down his heroic countenance, and sobbed like a child. He then clenched his fist and smote the table, with what seemed to be a suppressed curse, long and deep. After he had somewhat recovered he repeated to me the message that Captain Smith had brought him from Twiggs. It was in such cautious language as to the General's -isolation and want of instruc- tions from Washington that I suggested to Governor Houston that possibly he misunderstood General Twiggs. 'No,' the Governor exclaimed, again smit- ing the table with his huge fist, 'there can be no mis- take. Twiggs is a traitor ! We are to have a fear- ful civil war. ' And he appealed to God for wisdom SECESSION 349 and protection in a manner which touched me to the heart." There was unquestionably a force in Texas which Houston could have called on, ardent supporters of himself as well as advocates of the Union, and he might perhaps, with the aid of the United States troops, have defeated the secession element. But it would have plunged the State into a civil war, and the action of Twiggs prevented the show of any com- manding strength at first to turn the scale in favor of the Unionists. The commissioners appointed by the Committee of Public Safety acted promptly. On February 11 they made a demand upon General Twiggs for the surrender of all the arms, munitions of war, and pub- lic property belonging to the United States in the Department of Texas. There were some negotiations between the commissioners and the board of officers appointed by General Twiggs in regard to terms. Twiggs insisted upon the retention of the arms then in the hands of the soldiers, and of some pieces of light artillery. Colonel Benjamin M'Cullogh had been appointed by the Committee of Public Safety to raise and take command of troops in behalf of the State, and appeared in San Antonio with a force of about 1200 men. The terms of the surrender were agreed upon. The troops were to have transportation to the coast, and to be permitted to return to the United States. The debts due from the quartermas- ter's department were to be paid out of the funds 350 SAM HOUSTON delivered to the commissioners. The soldiers were to retain their arms. The surrender was executed on February 18, before the people had voted on the ordinance of secession, and after an order had arrived from Washington, relieving General Twiggs from the command of the Department and directing him to turn it over to Colonel Carlos A. Waite, the senior officer. Colonel Waite was absent from San Antonio, but arrived a few hours after the surrender was made. The number of men surrendered was about 2500, and the value of the property $1,200,- 000. The sum of $50,000 in money was turned over to the commissioners, and they afterward seized 130,000 sent to the State to pay the troops. Bodies of Texan troops were sent to demand the surrender of the various detachments in the forts and posts along the Rio Grande and on the frontier, and, after some indignant remonstrances on the part of the officers in command, they were given up. Strong efforts were made to induce the officers and men to take service with the Confederacy, but only a few of the officers of Southern birth did so, almost all of the enlisted men remaining faithful to their flag. General Twiggs, having accomplished his purpose, returned to New Orleans, and on March 1 was dis- missed from the army for treachery by order of Sec- retary Holt. Owing to the lack of transportation, but few of the troops were removed from Texas before the outbreak of the war between the United States and the Confederacy, and the remainder were SECESSION 351 made prisoners of war, in violation of the agreement with the commissioners, by order of Colonel Van Dorn, and compelled to give their parole not to bear arms against the Confederacy until exchanged. Whatever purpose Houston may have entertained at the beginning of the troubles, he abandoned any design of forcible resistance to secession after the surrender of the United States troops. On March 18, after the new administration of Lincoln had determined to maintain the Union by force. General Scott sent orders to Colonel Waite to form an in- trenched camp at Indianola, and put himself in com- munication with Governor Houston, to offer him assistance in defense of the Federal authority. If neither Houston nor any other authority had any considerable number of men in arms in defense of the Federal Government, Colonel Waite was to consider his orders to form an intrenched camp withdrawn. Colonel Wait6^ communicated with Houston, offering his assistance, and received the following reply : — Austin, March 29, 1861. Dear Sir, — I have received intelligence that you have, or will soon receive orders to concentrate United States troops under your command at Indian- ola, in this State, to sustain me in the exercise of my official functions. Allow me most respectfully to decline any such assistance of the United States gov- ernment, and to most earnestly protest against the concentration of troops in fortifications in Texas, and 352 SAM HOUSTON request that you remove all such troops out of the State at the earliest day practicable, or, at any rate, by all means take no action towards hostile move- ments till farther ordered by the Government at Washington City, or particularly of Texas. Thine, Sam Houston. Colonel Lander also wrote to Colonel Waite ad- vising him to take no action that would give the se- cession party the idea that the Federal Government intended to coerce the State. Colonel Waite in- formed General Scott that it was the feeling of the Unionists that they could effect a peaceable change in the views of the inhabitants of the State by means of the press and the ballot box, and that they believed that a few thousand dollars in the support of newspa- pers throughout the State would produce a complete revolution in public sentiment. There was evidently at first a considerable Union sentiment among the people of Texas. In San Antonio there was a strong party opposed to secession, and in Austin a large mass meeting was held just before the election on the secession ordinance, at which there was a pole erected and a United States flag displayed. Houston made a speech at Galveston, which was the hot-bed of secession, a few days before the elec- tion. When he arrived his friends gathered about him, and asked him not to speak, as there was immi- nent danger of mob violence. He replied that he had been threatened before, and should certainly SECESSION 353 make his speech. It was delivered from the balcony of the Tremont House at eleven o'clock in the fore- noon to an excited throng that filled the street. As he had often done before, Houston overawed the crowd, and compelled a respectful attention. Mr. Thomas North, a Northern man who lived in Texas during the war, thus describes Houston's appearance when speaking : — "There he stood, an old man of seventy years, on the balcony ten feet above the heads of the thousands assembled to hear him, where every eye could scan his magnificent form, six feet and three inches high, straight as an arrow, with deep-set and penetrating eyes, looking out from heavy and thundering eye- brows, a high open forehead, with something of the infinite intellectual shadowed there, crowned with the white locks, partly erect, seeming to give capillary conduction to the electric fluid used by his massive brain, and a voice of the deep basso tone, which shook and commanded the soul of the hearer; add- ing to all this a powerful manner, made up of de- liberation, self-possession, and restrained majesty of action, leaving the hearer impressed with the feeling that more of his power was hidden than revealed. Thus appeared Sam Houston on this grand occasion, equal and superior to it, as he always was to every other. He paralyzed the arm of the mobocrat by his personal presence, and it was morally impossible for him to be mobbed in Texas, and, if not there, then not anywhere." 354 SAAI HOUSTON He spoke with great force and eloquence of the disasters which would surely follow secession, and of the certainty of the defeat of the South. He said : " Some of you laugh to scorn the idea of bloodshed as the result of secession, and jocularly propose to drink all the blood that will ever flow in consequence of it. But let me tell you what is coming on the heels of secession. The time will come when your fathers and husbands, your sons and brothers, will be herded together like sheep and cattle at the point of the bayonet ; and your mothers and wives, and sisters and daughters, will ask, 'Where are they? ' and echo will answer. Where ? You may, after the sacrifice of countless millions of treasure and hundreds of thou- sands of precious lives, as a bare possibility, win Southern independence, if God be not against you; but I doubt it. I tell you that, while I believe with you in the doctrine of state rights, the North is de- termined to preserve this Union. They are not a fiery, impulsive people as you are, for they live in colder climates. But when they begin to move in a given direction, where great interests are involved, such as the present issue before the country, they move with the steady momentum and perseverance of a mighty avalanche; and what I fear is, they will overwhelm the South with ignoble defeat, and I would say Amen to the suffering and defeat I have pictured, if the present difficulties could find no other solution, and that, too, by peaceable means. I be- lieve they can. Otherwise I would say, 'Better die freemen than live slaves.' " SECESSION 355 In conclusion he said, however, that he should abide by the action of his State : — "Whatever course my State shall determine to pursue, my faith in state supremacy and state rights will carry my sympathies with her. And as Henry Clay, my political opponent on annexation, said, when asked why he allowed his son to go into the Mexican war, ' My country, right or wrong, ' so I say. My State, right or wrong." But Houston could not stem the tide. The seces- sionists were active and violent. Armed bands in- timidated the citizens, and mob rule prevailed. In some sections Union men were hung, or compelled to flee for their lives. Houses were burned, and prop- erty destroyed. The Union men were still farther discouraged by the news of the surrender of Twiggs, and that the Federal Government made no sign of giving them support. But the prevalence of the Union sentiment was indicated by the fact that at the election out of about 80,000 voters only 52,246 cast their ballots. Of these 34,415 were for secession, and 13,841 against it. The convention reassembled after the election, and took steps to unite Texas with the Confederacy. It accepted the Confederate Constitution, and elected members of the Confederate Congress. A committee was appointed to inform Houston of its action. He protested against it, declaring that the convention had no farther authority from the people after it had submitted the ordinance of secession for their ratifica- 356 SAM HOUSTON tion. In the mean time the Confederate authorities had assumed jurisdiction over Texas. Before the convention had reassembled, L. Pope Walker, the Confederate Secretary of War, sent a circular to Houston announcing that the President of the Con- federate States assumed control of all military opera- tions in the State, and over lall questions relating to foreign powers. Houston replied that by the act of secession Texas had become independent, and was not yet united with the Confederacy. He denied the authority of the convention to unite Texas with the Confederate States without the sanction of the people. The protest was in mild terms, and at its conclusion he said : — "The States which have formed the Provisional Government have his ardent wishes for their welfare and prosperity. The people of Texas are now bound to them in feeling and sympathy no less closely than when members of a common Union. Like circum- stances induced withdrawal from the Union. Like peril and uncertainty are before them. No matter what the position of Texas may be, she cannot but feel that ties of no common nature bind her to those States. But, however close those ties may be in feeling, there are requirements due the national pride and dignity of a people who have just resumed their nationality which do not sanction the course pursued in annexing them to a new government without their knowledge or consent." On March 14, the convention adopted an ordinance SECESSION - 357 requiring the State officers to take the oath of alle- giance to the Confederacy. Houston and E. W. Cave, the Secretary of State, declined to obey the order. When the day came to take the oath the presiding officer of the convention called three times, "Sam Houston, Sam Houston, Sam Houston," but the governor remained in his office in the basement of the Capitol, whittling his pine stick, and hearing the echo of the noise and tumult in the hall above his head. Houston and Cave were declared deposed from their offices, and Edward Clark, the lieutenant governor, was installed as governor. Houston pro- tested, and appealed to the legislature, which assem- bled on the 18th, but it confirmed the action of the convention. Houston issued an address to the peo- ple protesting against the illegal acts and usurpations of the convention. But he declared that he should make no attempt to retain his position by force. He said : — "I love Texas too well to bring civil strife and bloodshed upon her. To avert this calamity I shall make no endeavor to maintain my authority as chief executive of the State, except by the peaceful exer- cise of my functions. When I can no longer do this I shall calmly withdraw from the scene, leaving the government in the hands of those who have usurped its authority, but still claiming that I am its chief executive. I protest in the name of the people of Texas against all the acts and doings of this conven- tion, and declare them null and void. I solemnly 358 . SAM HOUSTON protest against the act of its members, who are bound by no oath themselves, in declaring my office vacant because I refuse to appear before it and take the oath prescribed." He still continued to go to his office, but on the morning of March 21 he found that Governor Clark had installed himself in the room before him. A hostile newspaper gives this account of their inter- view : — "By and by the deposed Governor came hobbling into the office, old Sam's San Jacinto wound having broken out afresh, as it always does on occasions of political trial. Perceiving Governor Clark occupy- ing his chair, old Sam addressed him : — "'Well, Governor Clark,' giving great emphasis to the title, 'you are an early riser.' "'Yes, General ^^ with a great stress upon the military title of his predecessor, 'I am illustrating the old maxim, the early bird catches the worm. ' " 'Well, Governor Clark, I hope you will find it an easier seat than I have found it. ' " 'I '11 endeavor to make it so. General, by con- forming to the clearly expressed wish of the people of Texas. ' " The General, having brought a large lunch basket with him, proceeded to put in numerous little arti- cles of private property, and to stow them away very carefully. Catching his foot in a hole in the carpet, and stumbling, the General suggested to Governor Clark that the new Government ought to afford a new SECESSION 359 carpet for the Governor's office, whereupon the Gov- ernor remarked that the Executive of Texas could get along very well without a carpet. "Having gathered up his duds, old Sam made a lit- tle farewell speech very much in the style of Cardinal Wolsey, declaring his conviction that, as in the past, Texas would call him from his retirement, and he hoped Governor Clark would be able to give as good an account of his stewardship as he could now ren- der. Halting at the door the General made a pro- found bow, and with an air of elaborate dignity said, 'Good-day, Governor C-1-a-r-k.' 'Good-day, Gen- eral Houston,' was the Governor's response." Houston left Austin, and returned to his residence in Huntsville, a small town in Walker County. An enemy wrote, "Houston has sunk out of sight, leav- ing but a ripple on the surface." Houston's action in reference to the secession of Texas has been much criticised, and he has been accused of inconsistency and pusillanimity. He cer- tainly did not take the course of Francis P. Blair in Missouri in organizing an armed resistance to seces- sion. He might possibly have done so, if he had been supported by General Twiggs, as Blair was by General Lyon. But it is probable that he would only have hoped to strengthen and give force to the Union sentiment, and overawe the secession element without bloodshed. It is within the bounds of possibility that, if Twiggs had taken a different course, the Union feeling might have prevailed. It is doubtful 360 SAM HOUSTON if the majority of the people of Texas were in favor of secession at the time the vote was taken. But events shaped themselves so that there could not have been a resistance without a bloody civil war within the State. Houston loved his people too much to precip- itate this. It is to be remembered, also, that Hous- ton was a Southern man, and, while he ardently loved the Union, and regretted secession as a matter of policy, his feelings were with his section. When the die was cast, his hopes and sympathies were for the success of the South. There is no reason to doubt his sincerity in saying that he yielded up his office rather than subject the people to the horrors of a civil war, and that he was with his State, right or wrong. His courage and firmness were abundantly proved in his resistance to the tumults and violence of secession, and the very serious dangers which accompanied them. The excitement ran tremendously high, and it was by no means impossible that some "Texan Brutus " might have taken Senator Iverson's advice to assassinate him. Events were too strong for Hous- ton. The position of Texas made her naturally a member of the Southern Confederacy. The Union sentiment was rather inert and indefinite, instead of active and passionate like that of the secessionists. It could not have triumphed without a civil war, and it is doubtful if a majority of the Unionists were ready for that, even if Houston had been willing to lead them. The people were mainly Southern, and when the Federal Government proclaimed its purpose SECESSION 361 of coercing the seceded States, all but a few, except- ing the German colonists, threw themselves heart and soul into the Confederate cause. It is possible that Houston hoped for a brief time that Texas, having seceded, would resume her independent sovereignty, and he was suspected of working for that end. But he must have soon seen that it was impossible, and have recognized that the fortunes of Texas were bound up with those of the rest of the slave-holding States. He realized the probabilities of the failure of the Confederacy, but he would not join in over- throwing the fortunes of his section, and he did not feel that allegiance to the Union which would com- pel him to fight against his people. His course was honorable and consistent from his point of view, and it was that almost universally taken by the original Union men of the South. He refused the offer of a major-general's commission from President Lincoln, and had no hope or ambition that was not identified with the welfare of the people of Texas. His eldest son entered the Confederate service, and he fitted him out with his arms and equipments. There is a good-humored jest attributed to him to the effect that he told his son that the most appropriate place for his secession rosette would be on the inside of the tail of his coat, but he subsequently said that if he had more sons old enough for the service they should go. He was for the Union, if it could be preserved by peaceful means, but for the South when the issue was made of resistance or submission to Federal coercion. 362 SA3I HOUSTON Daring his administration as governor there was no opportunity for attention to the internal affairs of the State. Everything was swept into the vortex of political strife and excitement. The only measure he could accomplish was the organization of a ranging force for the protection of the frontier, which fell to pieces during the secession excitement, leaving the people defenseless after the United States troops sur- rendered. CHAPTER XVI LAST YEARS — DEATH Houston had not taken the means to secure for himself a life of luxurious ease after his retirement from public life. He had had ample opportunities to acquire wealth by obtaining tracts of rich lands and advantageous holdings in the newly founded towns, by which many of his associates laid the foundations of large fortunes, but he did not take them, nor did he engage in any of the schemes for the profitable devel- opment of the resources of a new country. He was indifferent to money, and during his early career in Texas lived in a careless frontier fashion, which often left him in straits for the means to purchase the com- mon necessaries of life. After his second marriage he lived in a more orderly manner, but without much more attention to the accrmiulation of property. He was always generous after the early Texas fashion, and his horses and belongings were at the service of any one in want or for the needs of his neighbors. The salary of his public office was always expended liberally, and he had no professional income, his practice as a lawyer having only been in the early days, when he addressed frontier juries without much reference to statute and precedent, and took his pay 364 SAM HOUSTON in whatever came handy. He had been almost en- tirely in public life, and lived by it. In his old age he had only a small piece of property near the town of Huntsville, a house consisting of a double log- cabin, and a limited amount of land around it. To this he retired, after his deposition as governor, without an occupation or an opportunity to earn an income. His later years were undoubtedly passed in poverty, particularly after the commercial and indus- trial isolation of the Confederacy set in, with its necessary privations upon the whole of the commu- nity, but the story that he and his family suffered for the want of the common necessaries of life is exag- gerated. They lived like their neighbors, and in the productive soil and genial climate there was no want of the means of living, whatever there may have been of the luxuries. Shortly after his retirement, Houston passed through the city of Houston on his way to Sour Lake, a bathing place of medicinal waters in Jeffer- son County, which he visited for the benefit of his health. It was the time of the hottest ebullition of the secession excitement. War had been declared, and the community was in all the furor of military enthusiasm. No one doubted of the success of the South, and any one who should venture to say that it was not sure of victory was regarded as a traitor and a public enemy. Houston was asked to speak by his friends, and there were violent threats from the se- cession element that he should not be allowed to do LAST YEARS 365 so. He treated tlie threats witli his usual contempt, and delivered his speech in the evening from the steps of the Academy. His friends armed themselves to protect him, and surrounded the platform. There was a secession torchlight procession, which paraded up and down the street while he was speaking, and a great deal of noise and disturbance. What was rare with Houston, he sometimes lost the thread of his dis- course, and turned to a friend near him to ask him to supply it. But he spoke with his usual force and courage. He told his excited and confident audience that the result of the war would be against them. The South would win victories at first, but the North had the whole of Europe to draw upon to supply its armies, and would work with the relentless force of a machine, while the South was isolated, and had no resources with which to make good its inevitable ex- haustion. There was an uneasiness about what Houston might do, and a dread of his power and influence upon the people among the secession element. Although he had peacefully retired from the governorship, he was suspected of plotting either with the Federal Govern- ment or to have Texas set up for herself as an inde- pendent Republic. On April 4, 1861, Governor Clark wrote to President Davis, urging the Confed- erate Government to take more effective measures for the protection of the frontier. He said: "It is more than probable that an effort will soon be made by the submission party of this State, with General Hous- 366 SAM HOUSTON ton at its head, to convert Texas into an independent Republic, and one of the most effective arguments will be that the Confederate States has supplied the place of the 2500 United States troops formerly upon our frontier with only a single regiment; " and there are other references in the correspondence of the time to such a design on the part of Houston. But his enemies took counsel of their fears. There is no evidence that Houston entertained any such purpose, and he certainly took no active steps to bring it about. On the contrary as the war kindled, his sympathies were strongly for the South, and he urged the most strenuous measures of resistance. In a speech at a festival of Baylor University at Inde- pendence, May 10, 1861, Houston declared his alle- giance to his section, and his readiness to enter the ranks, if necessary, to repel invasion. He said : — "Now that not only coercion, but a vindictive war is to be inaugurated, I stand ready to redeem my pledge to the people. Whether the Convention was right or wrong is not now the question. Whether I was treated justly or unjustly is not now to be con- sidered. I put all that under my feet and there it shall stay. Let those who stood by me do the same, and let us all show at a time when perils environ our beloved land we know how to be patriots and Texans. Let us have no past but the glorious past, whose glorious deeds shall stimulate us to resistance to tyranny and wrong, and, burying in the grave of oblivion all our past differences, let us go forward LAST YEARS 367 determined not to yield until our independence is acknowledged; or, if not acknowledged, wrung from our enemies by the force of our valor. It is no time to turn back now; the people bave put tbeir bands to tbe plougb; tbey must go forward; to recede would be worse than ignominy. Better meet war in its deadliest shape than cringe before an enemy whose wrath we have invoked. I make no pretension as to myself. I have yielded up office, and sought retire- ment to preserve peace among our people. My ser- vices are perhaps not important enough to be desired. Others are perhaps more competent to lead the people through the revolution. I have been with them through the fiery ordeal once, and I know that with prudence and discipline their courage will surmount all obstacles. Should the tocsin of war, calling the people to resist the invader, reach the retirement to which I shall go, I will heed neither the denunciations of my enemies or the clamor of my own friends, but will join the ranks of my countrymen to defend Texas once again." He did not forget his humorous sarcasm upon his opponents, who had been very vigorous in bringing on the war, but less decided in taking part in it. Mr. North gives an account of a scene at a review in Galveston in which he scored them in his rough and popular fashion: — "During the first year of the war. Colonel Moore had organized a splendid regiment of 1100 young men, volunteers mostly from Galveston, finely 368 SAM HOUSTON equipped, of which Sam Houston, Jr. , was a member. The}^ were on dress parade daily, and presented a charming appearance. It was as fine a regiment as went to the war from any section of the country. The Colonel was justly proud of them, and fond of exhibiting their superior drill and 'dress' to the public, and particularly to old military men. They fought their first battle at Pittsburgh Landing, or Shiloh, as the Confederates called it. But before leaving the island for the seat of war, the Colonel invited General Houston to review his regiment. Now Judge Campbell, of one of the judicial districts of Texas, and Williamson S. Oldham, member of the Confederate Congress, had been the old General's bitter enemies during the canvass on secession. They had followed him night and day throughout the State. On the day set for him to review and put the regiment through some military evolutions, the Gen- eral was on hand at the hour and place. This called out a large concourse of people to witness the per- formance ; the day was sunny and beautiful ; the hour ten in the forenoon; the regiment was in complete uniform and perfectly armed; their arms glistened in the sunbeams as they stood in perfect 'dress ' and at 'present arms,' when the 'hero of San Jacinto,' sup- ported by their Colonel, stood in front. He was the hero of San Jacinto sure enough, for there he stood in the same military suit he had worn in 1836 at the battle of San Jacinto, when Santa Anna was cap- tured, his pants tucked in the top of military boots; LAST YEARS 369 suspended at his side was the same old sword, and on his head was a weather-beaten, light-colored, broad- brimmed planter hat, the left side buttoned up to the crown. There he stood, the very impersonation of the olden times. It was a sight for sensation. All eyes were now upon him, some of them dimmed with tears, and many a throat of soldier and spectator was choking down feeling unutterable, — the writer among the rest. Not a word had yet passed the Gen- eral's lips, but now the Colonel passed him his own sword and told him to proceed. Then came : — "'Shoulder arms. "'Right about face.' The regiment now facing to the rear, the General cried out in stentorian tones of sarcasm: 'Do you see anything of Judge Campbell or Williamson S. Oldham here? ' "'No,' was the emphatic reply. "'Well,' said the General, 'they are not found at the front nor even at the rear. "'Right about, front face. "'Eyes right. Do you see anything of Judge Campbell's son here? ' "'No, he has gone to Paris to school,' responded the regiment. '"Eyes left. Do you see anything of young Sam Houston here ? ' "'Yes,' was the thrilling response. "'Eyes front. Do you see anything of old Sam Houston here? ' By this time the climax of excite- ment was reached, and the regiment and citizens re- 370 SAM HOUSTON sponded in thunder tones, 'Yes ! ' and then united in a triple round of three times three and a tiger for the old hero. Thereupon he returned the Colonel his sword with the remark: 'There, Colonel, that will do, I leave you to manage the rest of the manoeu- vring,' and retired from dress parade." But Houston's health soon began to fail. His splendid constitution, which had withstood his wounds, his hardships, and his excesses without giving way, began to feel the effects of old age. His old wounds renewed their pains, and he was obliged to walk with a crutch and a cane. He was attacked by painful and wasting illnesses, and at one time in the fall of 1862 he was very near death. His friend, Mr. Hamilton Stewart, gives the following account of the occasion : — "While he was living at Cedar Point the word came down that he was dying. I took the next boat up, and found Mr. Houston was very sick with the fever. I remained for some days, doing all I could. The house stood in a grove of cedars. The time was the fall of the year. The wind blew and the rain fell. The surroundings were about as desolate as could be. A young doctor, who hadn't had much experience, was attending Mr. Houston. One night he came up and called me out. He said he thought the end was near, and asked me to tell Mr. Houston. I didn't much like the duty. After thinking it over I went into the room where Mr. Houston was lying, and told him what the doctor said. He did n't make LAST YEARS 371 any reply for a few minutes. Then lie turned to me, and said, ' Call tlie family. ' I went out and aroused Mrs. Houston and the children. After they came in Mr. Houston said, 'Call the servants.' All gathered about the bedside. Mr. Houston proceeded calmly and slowly to give detailed instructions about what he wanted done. He had some advice for each one present. When he had finished he called for the Bible and had a psalm read. Turning to two daugh- ters he asked them to sing a hymn, which he desig- nated. The girls began, but broke down sobbing. Mr. Houston took it up and finished it. After that he sent them all to bed again. He was very low, but he did not die at that time. When he became better I returned to Galveston. As I bade him good- by he sent an expression of his kindest feeling to all of his friends. Then, warming up, he said, 'Tell my enemies I am not dead yet.' " His mind, afflicted with the calamities of the coun- try, and doubtful of the success of his section, re- acted upon his bodily strength. He became melan- choly and despondent, and in a measure lost his hold upon life. To his old friends he spoke doubtfully of the success of the South, and looked beyond to the results which would follow the restoration of the Union. To one of them he said that the immense fortunes which were being made in the North during the war would seek an outlet as soon as it was over, and that within less than fifteen years the cars would be running through Texas to the City of Mexico and 372 SAM HOUSTON to San Francisco. At times tlie old spirit flashed out. The military officers of the Confederacy had established a very stringent system of martial law in Texas, by which all the male inhabitants over six- teen years of age were required to register them- selves, and obtain passes from the provost-marshals. Houston paid no attention to the order, and at one time was halted by a superserviceable official, who de- manded his pass. The old man waved him aside with a frowning countenance, and replied, " San Jacinto is my pass through Texas." He wrote a letter of ear- nest protest against the proclamation of martial law, issued May 31, 1861, by General P. D. Hebert, commanding the Department of Texas, to Governor Lubbock. He charged General Hebert with the abrogation of the principles of individual liberty, and appealed to the governor to maintain the rights of the people. The decrees of banishment against Union citizens, and the system of oppression and in- timidation, were carried out in the most harsh and vindictive manner, and Houston revolted against the needless tyranny. His letter to the governor was not published until six months after it was written, and made a profound impression upon the people, discouraged by the reverses to the Confederate ar- mies, and indignant at the military rule of the Con- federate officers in Texas. But Houston was still firm for resistance to the North. After the recapture of Galveston by the Texan forces on January 1, 1863, he wrote a congratulatory letter to General LAST YEARS 373 Magrucler, in wliicli lie thanked him for "driving from the soil a ruthless enemy," and said that he would have paid him his respects personally, but that he had just risen from a sick-bed. The Federal sol- diers, captured at Galveston, were treated with great harshness, and confined in prison like common crimi- nals. Houston was indignant at this unmanly con- duct on the part of the Confederate authorities, and applied in person to the superintendent of the peni- tentiary to remove the officers and men from convict cells to quarters more appropriate to prisoners of war. The superintendent did so, and took them into his own house, where they remained until they were exchanged. Houston's last speech was delivered in the city of Houston March 18, 1863. The animosity and bit- terness with which he had been regarded for his course in opposing secession had died away, and a feeling of respect for his venerable age, and a con- sciousness that he had been right in his prediction of the evils which would follow the attempt to dissolve the Union, added to the consideration due to his his- tory and achievements. He was listened to with re- spectful attention, and spoke with much pathos of his age and the approaching end of his life. He said : — "Ladies and Fellow - Citizens : With feelings of pleasure and friendly greeting I once again stand be- fore this, an assemblage of my countrymen. As I behold this large assemblage, who, from their homes and daily toil, have come once again to greet the 374 SAM HOUSTON man who has so often known their kindness and affection, I can feel that even yet I hold a place in their high regard. This manifestation is the highest compliment that can be paid to the citizen and pa- triot. As you have gathered here to listen to the sentiments of my heart, knowing that the days draw nigh nnto me when all thoughts of ambition and worldly pride give place to the earnestness of age, I know you will bear with me, while with calmness and without the fervor and eloquence of youth, I express those sentiments which seem natural to my mind in the view of the condition of the country. I have been buffeted by the waves as I have been borne along- time 's ocean, until, shattered and worn, I approach the narrow isthmus which divides it from the sea of eternity beyond. Ere I step forward to journey through the pilgrimage of death, I would say that all my thoughts and all my hopes are with my coun- try. If one impulse arises above another, it is for the happiness of these people ; the welfare and glory of Texas will be the uppermost thought while the spark of life lingers in this breast." He spoke hopefully of the probabilities of the suc- cess of the Confederacy. He pointed out the favora- ble chances of the interference of France in behalf of the South in the support of its Mexican scheme; spoke of the dissatisfaction caused by the depreciation of the greenback currency in the North, of the dan- gers of the drafts to the Federal authority, and the weariness of the Northwest with the war. His voice LAST YEARS 375 was still for prolonged and desperate resistance. He said : — "Thus, although I do not look with confidence to these results, nor do I advance them as more than mere probabilities, they certainly indicate that there is discord and discontent at the North, and these always will embarrass its cause, and endanger its suc- cess. Yet I do not trust to these things, nor would I have you do so. Let us go forward, nerved to nobler deeds than we have yet given to history. Let us bid defiance to all the hosts that our enemies can bring against us. Can Lincoln expect to subjugate a people thus resolved? No! From every conflict they will arise the stronger and more resolute. Are we deprived of the luxuries which our enemies pos- sess? We have learned how little necessary they are, and it is no privation to do without them." But his darker forebodings of the fate of the Con- federacy were destined to be fulfilled. On the 4th of July, 1863, Yicksburg fell, and Houston must have realized that it was the death stroke to the cause of the South. He was then on his death-bed. His bodily forces had gradually failed him, without any sharp attack of illness. He spent much of his time in reading the Bible, and in prayers for his country and his family. He received the ministrations of a Presbyterian clergyman, with whom he had previously been in antagonism, but with whom he was reconciled by the touch of death. All his family were about him, except his eldest son, Lieutenant Sam Houston, 37-6 SAM HOUSTON who was wounded and a prisoner in the hands of the enemy. "The day before his death," his daughter writes, "he fell into a comatose state from which we could not rouse him; but during the next forenoon we heard his voice in a tone of entreaty, and, listen- ing to the feeble sound, we caught the words 'Texas! Texas ! ' Soon afterward my mother was sitting by his bedside with his hand in hers, and his lips moved once again. 'Margaret,' he said, and the voice we loved was silent forever. As the sun sank below the horizon his spirit left this earth for a better land." He died July 26, 1863, aged seventy years, four months, and twenty-four days. He left a widow and eight children, some of whom have since distinguished themselves in the political and professional life of Texas. His will was peculiar and characteristic. After bequeathing his property to his family, he said in regard to the education of his sons : - — "My will is that my sons should receive solid and useful education and that no portion of their time be devoted to the study of abstract science. I greatly desire that they may possess a thorough knowledge of the English language, with a good knowledge of the Latin language. I request that they be instructed in the Holy Scriptures, and next to these that they be rendered thoroughly in a knowledge of geography and history. I wish my sons to be taught an entire contempt for novels and light reading, as well as for the morals and manners with whom they may be associated or instructed." DEATH 377 He bequeathed liis sword to Ms eldest son in these terms : — "To my eldest son, Sam Houston, I bequeath my sword, worn in the battle of San Jacinto, to be drawn only in defense of the constitution, the laws and lib- erties of his country. If any attempt be made to assail one of these I wish it to be used in vindica- tion." The will was dated the 2d of April, 1863. His remains were buried at Huntsville, with a plain slab, bearing the inscription, "General Sam Houston. Born March 2, 1793. Died July 26, 1863; " and he sleeps beneath the tangled vines and grass, after a life of tumult and vicissitude such as falls to the lot of few mortals. At the winter session following his death the legislature adopted resolutions expressing regret at the extinction of so great a light in the dark hours of the nation's existence, and paying tri- bute to his unblemished patriotism and untiring re- gard for the people of Texas. It afterward appro- priated 11700 to Mrs. Houston to pay the salary for his unfinished term as governor. The mourning of the people of Texas was deep and sincere for one who, with all his faults and all the antagonisms he had aroused, was regarded as the national hero, and detraction was silent in the sense of loss, and the gratitude and reverence for one who embodied the popular pride and typified a heroic history. CHAPTER XVII CHAKACTEKISTICS Houston, althougli with such marked and peculiar individual characteristics, was essentially the product of his time and circumstance. He grew out of that condition in which the generation of the descendants of the original settlers of the country were brought into contact with the forces of nature and the savage inhabitants in a way to influence their native char- acter as well as their lives. They were born into the pioneer period, instead of coming to it in mature life, and they had not shared the original education and training of their ancestors. It was a state of barba- rism in its outward forms, and they were more essen- tially a part of it than those who had preceded them. Their education was limited and meagre, and their training and governing influences were in the life of the wilderness, the primeval forest, which enveloped them with its perils and hardships, its temptings to adventure, and the labors necessary to carve out a home in it. This produced a hardy and indomitable spirit, which found its relief in the enthusiasm of perilous adventure and in the pursuit of game, and a vigor and energy of the bodily powers which found their keenest zest in dangerous sports and exhausting CHARACTERISTICS 379 trials of strength. It was a race of vikings, drawn by passion and exuberant energy to the life of the forest and the adventures of the wilderness, as their prototypes had been to those of the sea. They re- tained the restraints of their English descent, and their instinct was to found a settled commui^y with all the germs of civilization, but in their character- istic types they were possessed by an overmastering impulse for adventure, and the hand-to-hand struggle with unsubdued nature. They assimilated to a cer- tain degree the ways and customs of the aboriginal inhabitants with whom they came in contact, with whom they fought, and in the midst of whom they lived. They had the migratory instinct and the fond- ness for wild life of the Indians, and, if they were governed by the higher traditions and motives of civi- lization, their lives and natures were also tinctured with savage passions and impulses. Sometimes the resemblance and influence were developed in a re- markable degree. The kinship of Houston with the Indian character has already been noticed. It led him, when a youth, to desert the restraints of even a frontier civilization, and take up his home among them, and he manifested the characteristic qualities and something of the man- ners of an Indian chief throughout his whole life. His powers of popular oratory, his perception of char- acter and his influence over men, his courage and bold conceptions of policy, his generosity and indif- ference to wealth, were the characteristics of a barba- 380 SAM HOUSTON rian leader. Then Ms undisguised personal vanity, his tricky cunning, and his passionate and reckless temperament were alike the attributes of the Indian. He might have figured as one of the leaders of the Greeks at the siege of Troy, with their practical wis- dom and their childish simplicity. It has been said that if he had been bound naked upon the back of a wild horse like Mazeppa the first tribe he came to would have elected him a prince; but it would have been a wandering tribe, and not a civilized and set- tled people. He owed his leadership in Texas to the conditions of tumult and adventure into which the people were thrown, since their lives represented in many ways the features of primitive barbarism. This is not to say that they were barbarians by nature, but in their strife with the wilderness and their hostile contact with the Indians and the Mexicans they were subject to all the conditions of primitive and incessant warfare which colored their lives and governed their actions. Houston's later life mani-^ fested distinct traces of his primitive habits and training, and revealed his limitations, in spite of the practical sagacity and broad wisdom which frequently characterized his statesmanship. He was out of place in the Senate, in contact with minds trained to think within the lines of civilized education, and to argue logically upon legal premises. He never adapted himself to its atmosphere or acquired its forms of oratory. He was like an Indian chief in a modern legislature. His strength was when he CHARACTERISTICS 381 could appeal to the thoughts and feelings of the com- mon people, sway them by his vigorous and somewhat histrionic eloquence, tickle them by his familiar hu- mor, and influence them by his shrewd common sense. It is doubtful if there has been in modern times any such orator for a crowd, except, perhaps, Daniel O'Connell. Certainly there has been none in Ameri- can history who could so sway a frontier audience. It used to be said that there were but two things that could draw out the people of Texas, — a circus and Sam Houston. Time and again he awed their turbu- lent spirits when they were in a state of the highest excitement and passion, and when any other man would have been howled down or subjected to bodily violence. Time and again he converted popular as- semblages to his own way of thinking, in spite of the most violent prejudice, and his political power was based on his popular eloquence. Yet he was far from being a demagogue. He did not flatter the passions and prejudices of the multitude, or govern his opinions by theirs. He withstood them with manly courage when there was occasion, and, if he could not convert them, vindicated himself. His power over the people was due to his genuine sympa- thy with them, as well as to his personal and popular gifts. He felt as they did, and his desires and am- bitions were for the welfare and prosperity of those who tilled the soil, and built homes in the wilderness with their own hands. He had no liking for, or affiliation with, that class who were endeavoring to 382 SAM HOUSTON build up a slave oligarchy at the South, and regarded them as the enemies of the section as well as of the nation. The most of his political quarrels were from the rivalries of ambitious schemers, eager for con- quest or personal power at the expense of the people. His own personal ambition was predominant, but it was based upon the welfare of the people, and he sacrificed it rather than submit to their erroneous judgment, and lead them in the way to ruin. In the affection and confidence of the people he had no com- petitor, and when they were swept away from him by the passion and excitement of the outbreak of the civil war, there was no one who could take his place as a popular leader. As a soldier Houston's career was too brief and limited to entitle him to rank among distinguished military leaders. In his first campaign he was merely the youthful subordinate who had only the opportunity to display his courage and dash, and acquire a reputation for bravery. In the second there were no conditions which involved accomplished military strategy, or tactical skill in battle. The only choice was either to meet the enemy in a mass at the threshold of the country, or allow him to pene- trate within it, at the cost of the destruction of the settlements along the line of march, in the expectation that he would either divide his forces, Or that they would become weakened by being drawn away from their base, so that they could be attacked with an assurance of victory. The decision simply required CHARACTERISTICS 383 the exercise of practical judgment and common sense. There may be doubt whether the fighting quality of the Texans would not have enabled them to defeat Santa Anna's army with even such odds as there were at the beginning, but the chances were uncertain, and a defeat would have meant the destruction of the army and the subjugation of the country. It was a risk which the circumstances would not justify, and Houston was governed by wisdom as well as prudence in the course which he took. The battle of San Jacinto required no tactical manoeuvring. The only thing to be done was to fall on the enemy with all the force of a sudden and crushing attack, and to trust to the elan and vigor of the Texan soldiers to overwhelm the feebler physique and fainter spirit of the Mexi- can. It simply required a leader to head the assault, keep his men in line, and restrain their fire until the deadly moment. This Houston did, and it may be said that the most accomplished soldier could have done no more. What Houston might have done with a larger army and a more extensive field of opera- tions can only be a matter of conjecture. He simply accomplished what the circumstances permitted, and displayed his natural capacity and common sense, but it was not enough to entitle him to a place in the ranks of trained and skillful military leaders. His enemies affected to doubt his physical courage, and ascribed his retreat to personal timidity. But he was wounded in leading assaults in both the battles in which he was engaged, and that may be taken to set- 384 SAM HOUSTON tie the question of his courage. It was still farther demonstrated throughout his life by his firmness in facing turbulent mobs, and in withstanding the threats of open and secret violence which so often accompanied his political action. It is true that he did not have that fighting disposition and that fondness for personal combat which characterized the fiery spirits of some of his associates and rivals. He was not a fire-eater or a desperado. He had too much common sense to put his life at the call of any indi- vidual who desired to provoke him to a duel, and would not give his enemies the chance of overthrow- ing his policy by killing him. No one but his antag- onists blamed him for this wise course, even if there had been no moral principle involved, and it is enough to say that he could not have held his place in such a state of society as that in which he lived from his youth up without having given abundant proof of his physical courage. As a statesman he showed broad wisdom and prac- tical sagacity. His action in the creation of a work- ing government for the Republic of Texas, without means, and in a turbulent and scattered society, amid the opposition and intrigue of ambitious rivals, how- ever much he may have been aided by some of his associates and by the support of the more intelligent element among the people, was a proof of his great administrative capacity, and the chief credit is due to his wisdom and influence. His course in restraining the eager adventurers who came to the country for CHARACTERISTICS 385 glory and conquest, and the restless spirits among the settlers from undertaking foolish and reckless at- tempts at the invasion of Mexico, showed his sound and practical jvidgment, and saved the country from great calamities, if not from destruction. His treat- ment of Santa Anna manifested his wisdom, as well as his magnanimity, and his dealings with the Indians were those of enlightened statesmanship as well as philanthropy. His prudent and practical economy rescued the Republic from financial collapse, and his negotiations with foreign nations were shrewd and skillful in effect, while dignified in manner and elevated in purpose. They did much to preserve Texas from being attacked by Mexico, and undoubt- edly contributed greatly to the annexation of Texas to the United States at the time it was accomplished. Considering the enormous difficulties of creating a government out of such materials, the troubles result- ing from the turbulence and lawlessness of the adven- turers and the restless and desperate opposition of rivals, the dangers of invasion from Mexico, the con- stant menace and trouble from the Indians, and the lack of means and credit, it must be admitted that Houston accomplished a task in the highest degree creditable to his wisdom and sagacity, and which it is, perhaps, not too much to say that no other could have done so well. In the field of national statesmanship Houston exhibited equal qualities of broad wisdom, firmness, and courage. He perceived the dangers which threat- 386 SAM HOUSTON ened his section from the aggressive designs of the leading slave-holders, and had the courage to oppose them at the cost of his political fortunes. To him and to Benton is due the credit of understanding and advocating the true interests of the South, as weU as of the nation, and their position was such that it vin- dicated their courage as well as their statesmanship. It was easy for Northern statesmen, representing the predominant sentiment of their constituents, to op- pose schemes for the territorial extension of slavery, but it was quite another matter for representatives of the South to oppose the apparent interests of their section, and all the force of active political intrigue working upon popular feeling. Houston's speeches on the Kansas-Nebraska bill show a prophetic pre- science, as well as a commanding eloquence, and vindicate his right to a high rank among American statesmen. Almost alone he advocated wisdom and justice in the treatment of the Indians, and the plans which he urged for the improvement of their condi- tion would have saved the nation from the just re- proach of injustice and neglect towards a feeble and helpless race. Some of his schemes were less wise, such as the attempt to induce the United States to assume a protectorate over Mexico, and the delusive vision of the presidency led him for a time into affili- ation with Know-Nothingism ; but as a whole his action in the legislative councils of the nation was creditable to his wisdom and sagacity. At the out- break of the civil war Houston manifested his enlight- CHARACTERISTICS 387 ened devotion to the Union, and his appreciation of the perils and calamities in which secession would involve the South. He resisted the folly and mad- ness so long as it could be done by peaceful means, but events were too strong for him. The condition and position of Texas were such that he could not have taken the action that was followed by some of the Union leaders in the Border States, even if he wished to do so; and when the rest of the South seceded, Texas was inevitably taken with it. Hous- ton's sympathies were with his people and with the South as a section, and when the war began he was for resistance. His action was by no means governed by timidity or demagoguery. He showed his per- sonal courage by opposing the tide of violent popular feeling at imminent risk, and he surrendered his office in order to vindicate his judgment. His course was entirely patriotic and consistent, considering his feelings and circumstances; and the blame which has been thrown upon him by Northern advocates of the Union for not plunging Texas into a civil war within the limits of the State is wholly undeserved. He believed in and supported the Union so long as it was possible without bloodshed; but he gave up the struggle when it involved a civil war among his own people. As a politician in the ordinary sense of the word Houston was extremely skillful. He was a keen and accurate judge of personal character, and knew at once those who would become rivals, and those whom 388 SAM HOUSTON he could attach to liimseK as supporters. The first lie attacked without stint, and overwhelmed with opprobrium and abuse, which aroused their fiercest indignation. The second he flattered, and attached to his fortunes by kindly familiarity and practical service. He was always interested in the welfare of young men, and ready to give them an opportunity to display their talents, if he did not believe them dan- gerous to the public welfare, or in the way of his personal supremacy. It is not true, however, that he was intolerant to opinion when it was not manifested in personal opposition, and his friendship for his col- league. Senator Rusk, was by no means the result of political subservience or lack of independence on the part of the latter. Many of his friends differed from him without exciting his animosity, and, if de- termined and masterful, he was not tyrannical. To personal enemies he was, however, vindictive, and never spared them any blow which could contribute to their discomfiture. His enemies complained of his "Indian cunning," and he was not always straight- forward in his political action. He was fond of tricks and surprises, which he apparently practiced for the love of them, or to excite the admiration of the people for his shrewdness, and affected an air of mystery which sometimes angered his friends as well as his enemies. A specimen of what he termed a "ruse," in dealing with a troublesome individual, is given by Mr. Ashbell Smith in his " Reminiscences of the Texas Republic : " — CHARACTERISTICS 389 " San Antonio was mucli the largest, richest, most influential city of Texas of that period. It was re- mote from the scene of the Texan government. There was no intervening population between it and the Mexican frontier. For its protection and that of the country a considerable squadron of cavalry was sta- tioned in the city. This squadron was indeed the only military force of Texas kept mobilized, that was ready to take the field. Major Western, who com- manded this body of cavalry, had by some acts and significant innuendoes intimated that he cared very little for the one-horse government in the city of Houston. President Houston was apprehensive that an order to recall the major or to relieve him might be disobeyed. It was announced publicly that a minister would be appointed to represent Texas at the court of St. James. Colonel William H. Patton was going to San Antonio on his own private busi- ness. President Houston, in a long and friendly conversation with Colonel Patton, at length adverted as by accident to the proposed mission to England. He spoke of Major Western, lauded his courtly man- ners, his polished address, his diplomatic ability; said the major reminded him strongly of Mr. Van Buren; asked Colonel Patton what he thought of the appoint- ment of Major Western to this mission. All this he begged Colonel Patton to hold in strict confidence, — 'nothing was absolutely determined upon,' — 'Colonel Patton need not be surprised at anything.' The President, waiting until he heard of Colonel Patton 's 390 SAM HOUSTON arrival at San Antonio, sent through the war depart- ment orders to Major Western to report in person at the seat of government. The major presented him- self in Houston, radiant and decorous as Titus at the head of the Eoman legions organized for the conquest of Jerusalem. Time rolled on. The major became visibly impatient despite the gracious accord with which President Houston greeted him. At length he began to inquire very quietly who was to be appointed to England, — he inquired of your speaker, who was a member of Houston's staff, — but Ashbell Smith 'knew nothing of cabinet matters, he was not a mem- ber of the Cabinet. ' Finally instructions were being made out in the state department and General Pink- ney Henderson was making preparations to leave for London. The rumor leaked out, — the major 'would not believe it.' 'President Houston had better judg- ment of men.' 'What did Henderson know of diplo- macy? ' The appointment of General Henderson became an established fact. The major 'was dis- gusted; ' he 'would go back to San Antonio; ' and he did, but he found his successor there, well established in the command of the cavalry. Eeferring to this matter at the time. General Houston said to your speaker that he would have no pronunciamentos of the Mexican fashion in Texas during his presidency. During his second presidency he had to confront and ward off the far more perilous danger of the pronun- ciamentos which were threatened, and which might have proved disastrous, but for his consummate tact CHARACTERISTICS 391 in charming them down. Recurring to the incident just related, General Houston at a subsequent time provided comfortably for his disappointed old friend, the major, by placing him at the head of the Indian bureau." There are many other anecdotes, perhaps less au- thentic, of the manner in which Houston tripped up his political adversaries, or led them into skillfully laid traps, and the stories of his cunning added to his stock of admiration among the people. Specimens of Houston's public speeches have been given. They show in some degree the defects of his education. There is not always a skillful or even a familiar choice of words, and the style is that of the heavy and somewhat stilted oratory of the time, with- out the massive polish which sometimes distinguished it, as in the case of Webster and Calhoun. But at times it was vivified by the strength of the thought and feeling behind it, and rose to the height of a dig- nified and forcible eloquence. His style of popular oratory has already been sufficiently characterized. His private speech was vigorous and incisive, and he often characterized his enemies with powerful force and humor. His description of Jefferson Davis was one of those epigrams which may be accepted as the truth of history, "Ambitious as Lucifer, and cold as a lizard." Houston had a personal follower by the name of S , whom he had obliged with small federal and state offices, and who professed great devotion to him. During the secession difficulties, 4^ 392 SAM HOUSTON however, he turned against Houston, and violently attacked and abused him. This was mentioned to Houston with a condemnation of S 's ingratitude. "You mustn't be hard on S ," said Houston. "I was always fond of dogs, and S has all the virtues of a dog, except his fidelity." Houston's most conspicuous weaknesses of temper- ament were his personal vanity and his tendency to histrionism. The eccentricity and theatrical display which characterized his dress have been noticed. It was almost childish in its manifest purpose to attract attention, and only his magnificent physique could have carried off his draping himself in an Indian blanket or a Mexican poncho, and the other bizarre eccentricities of his attire, without ridicule, and they were another evidence of the tendencies of a barba- rian chieftain. They passed in the rude and uncon- ventional society of the frontier which shared in the same tendencies and irregularities, but they detracted from the dignity and sobriety which are the customs of civilization, and gave an air of melodramatic eccen- tricity to Houston which was an injury to his weight and influence. Perhaps no other strong and practi- cal-minded man has had this weakness in so marked a degree as Houston, in spite of the record of the early velvets and laces of Disraeli. His histrionism was no less marked. An old associate and friendly ob- server has remarked that Houston was always acting, that is, always trying to impress the persons he was with, whether it was in a room or at a public meet- CHARACTERISTICS 393 ing. Another has said that his air of dignity never left him, even when drunk, and that he preserved his native superiority even in the rudest familiarity of the camp fire or the frontier frolic. This again is characteristic of the Indian chief. He appreciated the value of a "scene," like Napoleon, and his out- bursts of apparently uncontrollable anger were as artificial as those of his friend and model, Andrew Jackson. He had the grand air which carried off the artificiality, as in the case of the elder Pitt, but there was a sense of the parade in his manner which alienated practical-minded men, and which only his real capacity and masterfulness excused. It imposed upon the people, however, and was one of the sources of his strength with them. He had a profound sense of his dignity and importance, and sometimes mani- fested it in incongruous ways. It was said in jest that his signature was written so as to read "I am Houston," instead of "Sam Houston," and, as has been recorded, he had a habit, when he wished to be particularly impressive, of speaking of himself in the third person. He had a good many difficulties about trifles, and at one time he was sued in the justice court of Houston by an Irishman who had dug a well for him. Houston asserted that the man had left his tools in the well, and that this was an offset to his claim. Judgment was given against Houston by default, and he appealed. On the trial of the appeal he claimed that as a Senator of the United States he had been called upon by his constituents to 394 SAM HOUSTON make a speech, and that this was a valid reason for his absence, so that the case should not have been de- faulted. He could not understand why his appeal was rejected on this excuse, and the dignity of his office as a Senator disregarded. But his sense of personal dignity had its force under adverse circum- stances. He never showed any sign of defeat, and after his deposition as governor he walked the streets of Austin as if he had been the victor in the contest. Houston was a man of warm affections and kindly nature. His manners to women were remarkably courteous and deferential. His word of address was not "Madam," but "Lady," and no matter what their rank or station his impressive politeness and consideration were always the same. It was not an affectation, but sprang from a genuine impulse of respect and chivalric feeling. His family affection was deep and strong. His second wife, to whom he owed so much for her influence upon his personal conduct, was enshrined in his deepest feelings of love and respect. To borrow Hawthorne's phrase, he had a smile which children loved, and gained their con- fidence and affection at once. He was fond of play- ing with children and telling them stories, and was constantly engaged in whittling out toys for them from his supplies of pine sticks. His own children were brought up in kindly freedom and confidence, although with a wise and judicious education and training. His slaves were kindly treated, and were in a measure members of the family. He was gener- CHARACTERISTICS 395 ous and helpful to all persons in distress, and his money and property were at the call of all who needed assistance. It is recorded that he once pulled off his coat and gave it to a ragged soldier who had served at San Jacinto, and his acts of charity were numerous and spontaneous. His excesses in liquor were those of his time and temperament. The mighty men of his era indulged in tremendous exaltations of intoxication, as they did in the excitement of combats, from the craving of their overflowing animal spirits, and fought and drank with equal appetite. Houston in the worst period of his indulgence was not an habitual sot, who drank from a degraded physical appetite, but from the stimulus of his temperament to excitement, and to drown grief and disappointment. There was some- thing Homeric in his debauches, and his freaks of conduct when under their influence were often of wild extravagance. His great physical strength dis- played itself in the smashing of furniture, and his wild whoops woke the sleepers with apprehensions of an Indian invasion. But somehow, as has been said, he kept the respect of the people, and no sense of degradation attached itself to his excesses. Drunk or sober Sam Houston was always "Sam Houston." The limitations of Houston's character will forbid his being reckoned among the world's great men. But no one will deny that he was a strong man, ca- pable of great achievement, practical-minded in spite of his eccentricities and weaknesses, with wise concep- 396 SAM HOUSTON tions of statesmanship and policy, determined and courageous, sincerely patriotic, and devoted to the welfare of his people. A type of his time and cir- cumstances, he rose above them by his capacity and energy, and signalized his own individuality, as well as illustrated the tendencies and opportunities which created him. There were others like him, but he surpassed them all except his prototype, Andrew Jackson. There will never be another Sam Houston in American history, for the state of society which produced him has passed away, and there are no longer such opportunities for pioneer adventure, and the creation of a State in the wilderness by aggressive settlements and the expulsion of a weaker race of col- onists. He has a marked place in the history of the nation, for what he represented as well as for; what he did, and his figure will grow in interest as a type of a peculiar and, with all its faults, a heroic period. BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON AND THE HIS- TORY OF TEXAS USED IN THE PREPARATION OF THIS VOLUME. Almanac, Texas, Galveston, 1856, et supra. Anderson, Charles. Texas Before and on the Eve of the Re- bellion. Cin., 1884. Audubon, J. J. Life and Journals. New York, 1867. Baker, D. W. C. Texas Scrap Book. New York, 1875. Bancroft, H. H. History of North Mexican States and Texas. 2 vols. San Francisco, 1889. Benton, Thomas H. Thirty Years' View. New York. 2 vols. 1854. Benton, Thomas H. Abridgment of Debates in Congress. 16 vols. New York, 1851. Bruce, Henry. Makers of America : Sam Houston. New York, 1891. Civil and Military History of Andrew Jackson. By an American Officer. New York, 1825. Colton, C. The Life and Times of Henry Clay. 2 vols. New York, 1846. Compilation of the Official Records of the Union and Con- federate Armies. Washington. Congressional Globe. Washington. Corner, William. San Antonio de Bexar. San Antonio, 1890. Crane, William Carey. Life and Select Literary Remains of Sam Houston. Phil., 1884. Crockett, David. Exploits and Adventures in Texas. New York, 1845. 398 BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON De Cordova, J. Texas, Its Resources and Its Public Men. Phil., 1858. Dewees. Letters from Texas. Louisville, 1858. Domenech, L'Abbd E. Journal d'un Missionaire au Texas et au Mexique. Paris, 1857. Duval, John C. Adventures of Big Foot Wallace, the Texas Ranger and Hunter. Phil., 1873. Duval, John C. Early Times in Texas. Austin, 1892. Dyer, Oliver. Great Senators of the United States. New York, 1881. Edwards, D. B. History of Texas. Cin., 1836. Featherstonehaugh, G. W. Excursion through the Slave States. New York, 1839. Foote, H. G. Texas and the Texans. 2 vols. Phil., 1841. Gouge, Wm. M. Fiscal History of Texas. Phil., 1852. Graham, Rev. John. Diary of the Siege of Londonderry. Londonderry, 1823. Greeley, Horace. The American Conflict. 2 vols. Hartford, 1873. Green, Thomas J. Journal of the Texas Expedition Against Mier. New York, 1845. HoUey, Mary Austin. Texas. Lexington, Ky., 1856. Hooton, Charles. St. Louis Isle, or Texiana. London, 1847. Horton, Col. Alexander. Sketch of the War of '36. Eastern Texas. San Augustine, 1857. Houston, Mrs. Texas and the Gulf of Mexico. London, 1848. Houston, Sam, The Life of. New York, 1855. Howard, H. R. The Life of Virgil A. Stewart. (The John A. Murrell Conspiracy.) New York, 1836. Hutchison, Rev. I. R., D. D. Reminiscences, Sketches, and Addresses. Houston, 1879. Johnston, Wm. Preston. Life of Gen. Albert Sidney John- ston. New York, 1878. Jones, Anson. Memoranda and Official Correspondence Re- lating to the Republic of Texas. New York, 1859. BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON 399 Kendal, G. W. Texas Santa F^ Expedition. London, 1849. Kennedy, William. The Rise, Progress, and Prospects of the Republic of Texas. 2 vols. London, 1841. Lester, C. Edwards. Sam Houston and his Republic. New York, 1846. Linn, John J. Reminiscences of Fifty Years in Texas. New York, 1883. Maillard, N. Doran. The History of the Republic of Texas. London, 1842. Mayo, Robert. Political Sketches of Eight Years in Washing- ton. Washington, 1839. Miranda. Expedition. In a Series of Letters. Boston, 1809. Morrell, Rev. Z. N. Flowers and Fruits of the Wilderness. Thirty-six Years in Texas. Boston, 1873. Newell, Rev. C. History of the Revolution in Texas. New York, 1838. Niles' Register. Washington. North, Thomas. Five Years in Texas, from 1861 to 1866. Cin., 1871. Olmstead, Frederick Law. A Journey through Texas. New York, 1857. Parker, A. A. Trip to the West and Texas. Concord, N. H., 1836. Parker, W. G. Unexplored Texas. Phil., 1856. Parton, James. Life of Andrew Jackson. 3 vols. New York, 1860. Paxton, Philip. A Stray Yankee in Texas. New York, 1857. Pierce, Edward L. Memoir and Letters of Charles Sumner. 4 vols. Boston, 1893. Phelan, James. American Commonwealths. Tennessee. Boston, 1887. Robinson, Wm. Davis. Narrative of the Expedition of Gen. Xavier Mina. Phil., 1820. Roche, James Jeffrey. The Story of the Filibusters. London, 1892. 400 BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON Roosevelt, Theodore. American Statesmen. Thomas H. Ben- ton. Boston, 1887. Sharp, Wm. Preston. The Prisoners of Perote. Phil., 1845. Shipman, Daniel. Frontier Life. Houston, Texas, 1879. Schurz, Carl. American Statesmen. Henry Clay. 2 vols. Boston, 1887. Schwartz, Stephan. Twenty-Two Months a Prisoner of War m Texas. St. Louis, 1892. Smith, Ashbell. Reminiscences of the Texas Republic. Gal- veston, 1876. Thompson, Waddy. Recollections of Mexico. New York, 1847. Thrall, Rev. Homer S. A Pictorial History of Texas. St. Louis, 1881. Thrall, Rev. Homer S. Life of Sam Houston. Round Table Magazine. Dallas, 1892-93. Truman, Ben. C. The Field of Honor. New York, 1884. Ward, H. G. Mexico. 2 vols. London, 1829. Wilburger, J. W. Indian Depredations in Texas. Austin, 1890. INDEX Alamo, description of, 140, 143 ; capture of, 149 et seq. Almonte, Col. Juan N., report on condi- tion of Texas, 55-59 ; protects Mrs. Dickenson, 151 ; surrenders at San Jacinto, 201. Alsbury, Mrs., survives massacre at Alamo, 151. Antonio, San, description of, 102; cap- ture of, 110 et seq. Archer, Branch T., settles in Texas, 75 ; President of Consultation, 117 ; com- missioner to United States, 121 ; Presi- dent Texas Railroad Co., 231. Archives, War of, 273, 274. Audrade, Gen., commands Mexican cav- alry, 138. Audubon, J. J., visits Houston, 246. Austin, Col. John, captures Velasco, 72. Austin, Moses, obtains concession in Texas, 61 ; death, 61. Austin, Stephen F., birth, 61 ; goes to Texas, 62 ; returns from Mexico, 72 delegate to Mexico, 87 ; arrested, 88 released, 93 ; given public dinner, 94 elected commander-in-chief, 98 ; re- signs, 106 ; commissioner to United States, 121 ; raises money for Texas, 134 ; Secretary of State, 229 ; death, 245. Bache, Richard, votes against annexa- tion, 290. Baker, Capt. Moseley, attacks provi- sional government, 122 ; insubordina- tion of, 192. Baker, Rev. William M., anecdote by, 248, 249. Bell, Senator, votes against Kansas-Ne- braska bill, 313. Benton, Thomas H., eulogizes Houston, 21 ; favors recognition of Texan inde- pendence, 235 ; opposes Kansas-Ne- braska bill, 313. Bercero, Sergt., describes battle of Ala- mo, 153. Bernard, Dr. Joseph, report of wounded at Alamo, 152 ; rescued at Goliad, 178. Bonham, Col. J. B., joins Alamo garri- son, 143 ; takes message to Fannin, 147 ; death, 150. Bowie, James, settles in Texas, 76 ; com- mands at battle of Concepcion, 102; character, 143 ; death, 150. Bowie, Rezin P., settles in Texas, 76. Bradburn, Col. John D., commands at Anahuac, 71 ; deprived of command, 72. Biurleson, Col. Edward, succeeds Austin in command of the army, 106 ; re- ceives surrender of San Antonio, 114 ; resigns, 114 ; commands centre at San Jacinto, 199; Vice-President, 262 commands at San Antonio, 268. Burnett, David G., settles in Texas, 75 President of the Republic, 159 ; pro tests against demands of army, 220 . resigns, 228 ; Vice-President, 249 ; ad- ministers government, 261. Burton, Capt. Isaac W., captures Mexi- can vessels, 227. Caldwell, Capt. Matthew, fights invad- ing force, 275. Calhoun, John C, rebukes Houston, 20 ; opposes prohibition of slavery in Ore- gon, 299. Cameron, Capt. Ewan, shot by Mexicans, 277. Carson, Samuel P., Secretary of State, 159 ; letter of, 159. Castenada, Capt., defeated at Gonzales, 96. CastriUon, commands Mexican artil- lery, 138 ; pleads for prisoners, 151 ; death, 201. Cave, E. W., declines to take oath to Confederacy, 157. Chambers, Thomas J., settles in Texas, 76. Clark, Edward, succeeds Houston as governor, 357 ; interview with Hous- ton, 358 ; writes to President Davis, 365. Clay, Henry, favors recognition of Texas, 221 ; opposes its annexation, 285. Coleto, battle of, 168, 169. Collingsworth, Capt. George, captures Goliad, 99. Collingsworth, James, commissioner to United States, 221 ; death, 229. Concepcion, battle of, 104 et seq. 402 INDEX Cook, Col. P. St. G., arrests Texan troops, 277. Cos, Gen. Martin Perfect© de, takes command in Coahuila, 91 ; marches to Bexar, 94 ; surrenders San Antonio, 113 ; leads attack on Alamo, 149 ; re- inforces Santa Anna, 197 ; made pris- oner, 208. Crockett, David, character, 143 ; joins Alamo garrison, 143 ; death, 150. Dawson, Capt. N., defeated by Mexicans, 275. Dickenson, Mrs. A. M,, survives Alamo massacre, 151. Douglas, Senator, introduces bill to repeal Missouri Compromise, 306 ; at- tacks New England clergymen, 314. Duque, Col., wounded at Alamo, 149. Dyer, Oliver, description of Houston, 327-329. Edwards, Hayden, incites Fredonian war, 60. Edwards, Munroe, singular career of, 71, 72. Ellis, Richard, President of Convention, 155. Evans, Major T. C, attempts to blow up Alamo, 150. Fannin, Col. James W., commands at battle of Concepcion, 103 ; appointed " agent " by Council, 128 ; elected colonel of volunteers, 131 ; attempts to relieve Alamo, 148 ; retreats from Goliad, 167 ; surrenders, 171 ; death, 179. Farias, Gomez, President of Mexico, 87 ; arrests Austin, 88 ; banished, 89. Filisola, Gen. Vincente, second in com- mand of Mexican army, 138 ; retreats, 207 ; suspended, 225. Fisher, Col. "WiUiam S., invades Mexico, 276. Flores, Manuel, agent to Indians, 251 ; kiUed, 251. Gaines, Gen. E. P., moves troops into Texas, 214. Gaona, Gen. , commands brigade in Mex- ican army, 138. Garay, Col., rescues prisoners at Goliad, 178. Goliad, Massacre of, 175 et seq. GoUaday, Frederic, letter of, 24. GoUaday, Isaac, befriends Houston, 23. Grant, Dr. James, organizes expedition to invade Mexico, 125 ; death, 164. Grayson, Peter, commissioner to United States, 221 ; death, 249. Green, Gen. Duff, protests against award of contract to Houston, 42. Green, Gen. T. F., arrests Santa Anna, 219 ; escapes from Perote, 277. Hamilton, Gen. James, minister to Great Britain and France, 258 ; attempts to negotiate loan, 259 ; proposes treaty with Mexico, 269. Hardiman, Baily, Secretary of the Treasury, 159. Hays, Col. John C, draws out Mexican troops, 275. Hebert, Geo. P. D., commands de- partment of Texas, 372. Henderson, Geo. J. Pinkney, minister to Great Britain, 229. Herrera, President, agrees to treaty with Texas, 289. Hockley, George W., chief -of -staff to Houston, 159 ; commands artillery at San Jacinto, 199. Holzinger, Lieut. -Col., receives surren- der of Fannin's troops, 173. Horton, Capt., driven off from Fannin, 178. Houston, Mrs. Eliza, marriage, 34 ; sep- aration from Houston, 36. Houston, Mrs. Elizabeth, removes to Tennessee, 3; sends her son to the war, 13. Houston, John, emigrates to America, 2. Houston, Mrs. M. H., description of Houston, 242-244. Houston, Mrs. Margaret M., marriage, 248. Houston, Robert, settles in Virginia, 2. Houston, Samuel, Sr., career, 2, 3. Houston, Sam, birth, 1 ; ancestry, 1, 2 ; education, 3, 4 ; runs away to the Cherokees, 5, 6 ; keeps school, 8 ; enlists, 10 ; appointed ensign, 11 ; wounded at To-ho-pe-ka, 14 ; carried home, 17 ; appointed lieutenant, 18 ; sub-agent of Cherokees, 18 ; attacked by slave-traders, 20 ; resigns from the army, 20 ; studies law, 22 ; prosecut- ing attorney, 26; major-general of militia, 26 ; Representative in Con- gress, 26 ; writes against Clay, 27 ; fights duel with Gen. White, 29, 30 ; anecdotes of controversies, 31, 32; reminiscences of, by Col. D. D. Clai- borne, 33 ; resigns the governorship, 34 ; separation from his wife, 34-36 ; goes to Indian Territory, 37 ; Indian life, 38 et seq. ; incurs hostility of In- dian ring, 42 ; assaults Hon. William Stanberry, 45 ; tried for breach of privilege of the House, 46-49 ; takes up with Indian wife, 50 ; duel with employee, 51 ; goes to Texas, 74, 75 ; anecdote of journey, 78 ; holds coun- cil with Indians at San Antonio, 79 ; reports to Jackson, 79-81 ; life at Washington , 82 ; makes arrangement with Indians, 93 ; elected comman- der of troops in eastern Texas, 97 declines to supersede Austin, 110 approves absolute independence, 120 elected commander-in-chief, 121 ; is- sues proclamation, 123 ; complains to Governor Smith, 129 ; discourages ex- INDEX 403 pedition to Matamoras, 133 ; elected delegate to Convention, 133 ; prepares " solemn declaration " in behalf of Indians, 134; makes treaty with In- dians, 136 ; reelected commander-in- chief, 157 ; leaves for Gonzales, 159 ; orders Fannin to abandon Goliad, 161 ; retreats from Gonzales, 163 ; falls back to the Brazos, 186 ; moves up the river, 189 ; moves in pursuit of Santa Anna, 192 ; orders Vince's bridge cut down, 199 ; commands battle of San Jacinto, 200 ; wounded, 202 ; sug- gests terms of treaty with Santa Anna, 209 ; issues farewell address to soldiers, 210 ; removed to New Orleans, 211 ; letter to Col. Raguet, 215 ; reception at New Orleans, 222 ; returns to Texas, 222 ; protests against execution of Santa Anna, 223 ; elected President, 228 ; inaugural address, 229 ; interview with Santa Anna, 231 ; releases Santa Anna, 232 ; message to Congress, 237 ; disbands army, 240 ; manages finances, 243, 244 ; manner of life, 24G; marriage to Miss Lea, 248 ; defends Indians, 252 ; opposes Santa F6 expedition, 256 ; reelected President, 262 ; measures of economy, 263 ; Indian talk, 2G5-267 ; letter to Santa Anna, 269, 270 ; vetoes army bill, 271 ; declares blockade of Mexi- can ports, 272 ; appeals to European governments, 276 ; letter to Jackson, 280 ; letter to Minister Murphy, 282 ; last message to Congress, 288 ; elected Senator, 296 ; first speech, 297 ; op- poses extension of slavery to Oregon, 300 ; defends Father Matthew, 303 ; reelected Senator, 305 ; opposes Kan- sas-Nebraska bill, 306 et seq. ; defends Indians, 310 et seq. ; defends New England clergymen, 313; movement to nominate for presidency, 318 ; criti- cises Kossuth, 319 ; voted for in Know-Nothing Convention, 320 ; de- feated for Senator, 323 ; defeated for governor, 323 ; advocates protecto- rate over Mexico, 323 ; farewell speech in Senate, 325 ; "conversion," 329- 331 ; nominated for governor, 335 ; canvass, 330-338 ; election, 338 ; at- titude toward secession, 339 et seq. ; letter to Gen. Twiggs, 346, 347 ; let- ter to Col. Waite, 351, 352; speech at Galveston, 354 ; letter to Secre- tary Walker, 356 ; deposition, 357 ; speech at Houston, 365 ; speech at Baylor University, 366 ; letter to Governor Lubbock, 372 ; congratulates Gen. Magruder, 373 ; relieves officers of Harriet Lane, 373 ; last speech, 373, 374 ; death, 376 ; will, 377, 378 ; character, 378 et seq. Hunt, Gen. Memucan, commissioner to United States, 229. Huston, Gen. Felix, recruits volunteers in Mississippi, 218; duel with Gen. A. S. Johnston, 239. Huston, James, signs address to Eline William III., 2. Iverson, Senator, controversy with Houston, 325: denounces Houston, 342. Jackson, Andrew, commands at To-ho- pe-ka, 12, 13 ; Senator from Tennes- see, 27 ; sympathetic letter to Hous- ton, 41 ; entertains Santa Anna in Washington, 272 ; message relating to Texas, 234; approves resolution for recognition of independence, 235 ; fa- vors annexation, 255 ; death, 295. Johnson, Cave, acts as friend to Hous- ton, 44. Johnson, Col. F. W., second in command in attack on San Antonio, 109 ; em- powered by Council to take command of expedition against Matamoras, 127 ; escape from San Patricio, 164. Johnston, Albert Sidney, joins Texan army, 239 ; appointed brigadier-gen- eral, 239 ; duel with Gen. Felix Hus- ton, 239 ; commands expedition against Indians, 251. Jones, Anson, criticises Houston's con- duct at battle of San Jacinto, 213 ; re- calls Minister Smith, 287 ; President of Texas, 288. Key, Francis Scott, counsel for Hous- ton, 46. King, Capt., sent to relief of Refugio, 165; death, 166. Kossuth, Louis, interview with Houston, 319. Lamar, Mirabeau B. , commands cavalry at San Jacinto, 200 ; protests against release of Santa Anna, 218 ; appointed to command army, 226 ; Vice-Presi- dent, 228 ; President, 249 ; policy of, 259 et seq. ; sends expedition to Santa F^, 257 ; abdicates, 260 ; opposes an- nexation, 289. Lander, Col. F. W., sent to Texas, 248; advice to Col. Waite, 352. Lee, Col. R. E., superseded by Gen. Twiggs, 245. Lester, C . Edwards, describes meeting of Houston with Indians, 315, 316. Lincoln^ President, sends messenger to Texas, 348 ; offers major-general's commission to Houston, 361. Lockhart, Matilda, released by Indians, 253. McLeod, Gen., commands Santa F^ ex- pedition, 257. M'Culloch, Benjamin, commands troops at San Antonio, 349. Meigs, Gen. Return J., agent to Chero- kees, 19. 404 INDEX Mexia, Gen., disgraceful conduct in ex- pedition to Tampico, 115. Milam, Col. Benjamin F., arrested in Coaliuila, 91 ; joins attack on Goliad, 92 ; calls for volunteers to attack San Antonio, 104 ; death. 111. Millard, Lieut.-Col,, commands infaiftry at San Jacinto, 199. Miller, Capt., captured at Copano, 175. Moore, Com. E. W., commands Texan navy, 255 ; sails for Yucatan, 272. Moore, Col. John H., commands at Gon- zales, 96 ; defeats Comanches, 251. Morfitt, Henry, commissioner to Texas, 221 ; report of, 234. Murphy, Col. "William S., minister to Texas, 280. North, Thomas, anecdote by, 353 ; de- scription of Houston at review, 368, 369. O'Connell, Daniel, opposes recognition of Texas, 259. Palmerston, Lord, recognizes independ- ence of Texas, 258. Parmer, Col. Martin, anecdotes of, 59, 60. Pierce, Franklin, President, 305. Polk, James K., favors annexation, 289. PortiUa, Col., ordered to execute pris- oners at Goliad, 175. Potter, Robert, Secretary of the Navy, 159. Ripley, Henry, wounded at Coleto, 171. Robertson, John C, President Commit- tee of Public Safety, 344. Robinson, James W., Lieut.-Gov., 124; proposes treaty with Mexico, 257. Runnels, Hamilton R., defeats Houston for governorship, 322 ; secession mes- sage, 334 ; defeated by Houston, 338. Rusk, Thomas J., settles in Texas, 76; Secretary of War, 139 ; joins army, 190 ; opposes attack at San Jacinto, 198 ; at battle of San Jacinto, 200 ; disbands army, 241 ; Senator of the United States, 296 ; death, 322. Saligny, M. de, minister from France, 259. Santa Anna, Antonio Lopez de, charac- ter and career, 83, 85 ; wins battle of Zacatecas, 90 ; takes command of army of invasion, 138 ; besieges Alamo, 145 ; orders massacre of prisoners at Goliad, 175 ; starts to join Gen. Sesma, 183 ; captures Harrisburg, 191 ; alarm at New Washington, 195 ; flight from San Jacinto, 201 ; capture of, 204 ; orders troops to withdraw from Texas, 207 ; signs treaty, 211 ; arrested, 218 ; plots to release, 227 ; interview with Houston, 231 ; release of, 232 ; repu- diates debt to Col. Bee, 233 ; deposes Bustamente, 267 ; letter to Houston, 269. Santa F«5, expedition to, 257, 258. Sesma, Gen., sent to relief of Gen. Cos, 137 ; crosses Colorado River, 190. Scott, Gen. W., orders Col. Waite to offer assistance to Houston, 351. Shackleford, Dr., rescued at Goliad, 177. Sherman, Col. Sidney, commands left wing at San Jacinto, 199. Simpson, Rev. J. W., account of Hous- ton's conversion, 324 et seq. Smith, Ashbell, minister to England, 286 ; anecdote by, 291, 384. Smith, Erasmus, character, 106 ; cuts down Vince's bridge, 199 ; at battle of San Jacinto, 202. Smith, Capt. J. W., enters Alamo, 147 ; escapes with message, 152. Smith, Henry, settles in Texas, 76 ; gov- ernor, 121 ; quarrels with Council, 124 et seq. ; deposed, 130 ; Secretary of the Treasury, 239. Snively, Capt. Jacob S., commands ex- pedition to New Mexico, 277. Somerville, Gen. Alexander, conunands Texan troops, 268 ; leads expedition to Rio Grande, 276. Stewart, Hamilton, anecdote by, 371, 372. Sumner, Charles, assault on, by Brooks, 314 ; opinion of Houston, 329. Sylvester, James T., captures Santa Anna, 205. Taylor, Zachary, President, 301 ; asserts authority in New Mexico, 302. Texas, early settlement of, 53 et seq. ; character of settlers of, 64 et seq. ; convention to ask separation from Coahuila, 86 ; general council of citi- zens, 98 ; General Consultation, 117 ; declaration of provisional independ- ence, 118, 120 ; provisional govern- ment, 121 ; bounty for volunteers, 123 ; General Convention, 155 ; decla- ration of independence, 156 ; consti- tution, 160 ; operations of the navy, 212 ; first Congress, 228 ; army dis- banded, 240 ; land grants, 241 ; finances, 242 ; under Lamar's adminis- tration, 260 et seq. ; navy of, 272 ; disturbances in neutral ground, 274 ; annexation, 280 et seq. ; boundary, 302 ; public debt, 303 ; secession, 333 et seq. ; union with the Confederacy, 356. Thomas, David, attorney-general, 159. Thompson, T. M., depredations on the coast, 96. To-ho-pe-ka, battle of, 13 et seq. Tolsa, Gen., commands brigade in Mex- ican army, 138. Travis, Col. William B., takes command at Alamo, 132 ; character, 143 ; appeals for assistance, 144 ; death, 150. Twiggs, Gen. David E., commands de- partment of Texas, 345 ; reply to Houston, 347 ; surrenders troops, 350. INDEX 405 Tyler, President John, favors annexa- tion, 279. Ugartchea, Col., captured at Velasco, 72 ; demands surrender of cannon, at Gonzales, 95; relieves San Antonio, 112. Urrea, Gen. , sent to Matamoras, 138 ; captures San Patricio, 164 ; attacks Fannin's troops, 269 ; supersedes FiM- sola, 225. Van Buren, Martin, opposes annexation, 286. Van Dorn, Col., compels surrender of U.-S. troops, 351. Van Zandt, Isaac, minister to Washing- ton, 279. Viesca, Augustin, governor of Coahuila, 90 ; arrested, 91. Waite, Col. Carlos A., succeeds Gen. Twiggs, 350; reports to Gen. Scott, 350. Ward, Col. William, defends Refugio, 166 ; death, 179. Walker, Hon. R. J., introduces resolu- tion for recognition of the independ- ence of Texas, 235. Wharton, John A. , settles in Texas, 76 ; escapes from Mexico, 244. Wharton, William H., settles in Texas, 76 ; commissioner to United States, 121 ; minister to United States, 229 ; captured, 244. Wigfall, Louis T., Senator of the United States, 322 ; denounces Houston, 342. Wise, Henry A., attacks Houston, 321. Woll, Gen. Adrian, sent to Texan camp, 208 ; invades Texas, 275. Zavala, Lorenzo de, flees to Texas, 91 ; Vice-President, 159 ; joins army, 190 : death, 244. ^oofes on ^i0ffrapf)p John T. Morse, Jr. John Quincy Adams. In American Statesmen Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50. Thomas Jefferson. In American Statesmen Se- ries. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50. John Adams. In American Statesmen Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50. Benjamin Franklin. In American Statesmen Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50. Abraham Lincohi. In American Statesmen Se- ries. With Portrait and Map. 2 vols. i6mo, ^2.50; half morocco, ^5.00. Theodore Roosevelt. Thomas H. Benton. In American Statesmen Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25; half morocco, ^2.50. Gouverneur Morris. In American Statesmen Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50. Carl Schurz. Henry Clay. In American Statesmen Series. 2 vols. i6mo, gilt top, ^2.50; half morocco, $5.00. Abraham Lincoln. An Essay. With Portrait. i6mo,gilttop,^i.oo. Horace E. Scudder. Noah Webster. In American Men of Letters Series. With Portrait. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half mo- rocco, ^2.50. George Washington. An Historical Biography. In Riverside Library for Young People. With Portrait and Illustrations. i6mo, 75 cents. William P. Trent. William Gilmore Simms. In American Men of Letters Series. With Portrait. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25. HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN &^ CO., Publishers. ^oofefi on ^ioffrapl)j) James Elliot Cabot. A Memoir of Ralph Waldo Emerson. With new Portrait. 2 vols, crown 8vo, gilt top, ^3.50 ; half calf, ^6.00. Large-Paper Edition, uniform with the Large- Paper Riverside Edition of Emerson's Works formerly published. Limited to 500 copies. With Portrait. 2 vols. Svo, boards, uncut, ^10.00, net. Thomas Carlyle and R. W. Emerson. Correspondence of Carlyle and Emerson, 1834- 1872. Edited by Charles Eliot Norton. Including newly- found Letters and with new Portraits. 2 vols, crown Svo, gilt top, ^4.00 ; half calf, or half morocco, ^8.00. '^^^ Library Edition. i2mo, $3.00; half calf, J^6.oo. George Willis Cooke. George Eliot : A Critical Study of her Life, Writings, and Philosophy. With Portrait. i2mo, ^2.00; half calf, $4.00. Ralph Waldo Emerson : His Life, Writings, and Philosophy. With Portrait. In one volume, i2mo, ^2.00 ; half calf, ^4.00. Thomas De Quincey. Autobiographic Sketches. Riverside Edition. i2mo, ^1.50. Autobiographic Sketches. Popular Edition. i6mo, ^i.oo. Literary Reminiscences. Popular Edition. i6mo, ^i.oo. Biographical and Historical Essays. Popular Edition. i6mo, ^i.oo, Edward Waldo Emerson. * Emerson in Concord. A Memoir. Written for the " Social Circle " in Concord, Massachusetts. With new Portrait. Crown Svo, gilt top, ^1.75. HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN 6r^ CO., Publishers, ^Z •inf^rt /^ "^^o^ ^ o^ 7- ^^di ^ V^ '^< ■^ ■" / S 9^ 1 2 vJ^ y c s -» ^ /■ v^ ^ ^^ °. .^ 9^ o A Z ^ ^ J \ . oX 0,.- V ^ ^ ' V * ^ '^.